The Mystery of the Clasped Hands: A Novel

By Guy Boothby

The Project Gutenberg eBook, The Mystery of the Clasped Hands, by Guy
Boothby


This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
almost no restrictions whatsoever.  You may copy it, give it away or
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org





Title: The Mystery of the Clasped Hands
       A Novel


Author: Guy Boothby



Release Date: May 25, 2013  [eBook #42807]

Language: English


***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE MYSTERY OF THE CLASPED HANDS***


E-text prepared by Annie McGuire from page images generously made
available by the Google Books Library Project (http://books.google.com)



Note: Images of the original pages are available through
      the Google Books Library Project. See
      http://www.google.com/books?id=_qIlAAAAMAAJ





THE MYSTERY OF THE CLASPED HANDS

       *       *       *       *       *

GUY BOOTHBY'S NOVELS.

Each, 12mo, cloth, $1.00; paper, 50 cents.

  The Mystery of the Clasped Hands.
  My Indian Queen.
  A Maker of Nations.
  Dr. Nikola's Experiment.
  Pharos, the Egyptian.
  The Lust of Hate.
  The Beautiful White Devil.
  Dr. Nikola.
  A Bid for Fortune.
  The Marriage of Esther.

D. APPLETON AND COMPANY, NEW YORK.

       *       *       *       *       *


THE MYSTERY OF THE CLASPED HANDS

A Novel

by

GUY BOOTHBY

Author of Dr. Nikola's Experiment
Pharos, The Egyptian
My Indian Queen, etc.







[Illustration]

New York
D. Appleton and Company
1901

Copyright, 1901,
By D. Appleton and Company.




CHAPTER I


"I never knew such a fellow as you are for ferreting out these low,
foreign eating-houses," said Godfrey Henderson to his friend, Victor
Fensden, as they turned from Oxford Street into one of the narrow
thoroughfares in the neighbourhood of Soho. "Why you should take such
trouble, and at the same time do your digestion such irreparable injury,
I can not imagine. There are any number of places where you can get a
chop or steak, free of garlic, in a decent quarter of the Town, to say
nothing of being waited upon by a man who _does_ look as if he had been
brave enough to face the dangers of washing once or twice within five
years."

His companion only laughed.

"Go on, my friend, go on," he said, blowing a cloud of cigarette smoke.
"You pretend to be a cosmopolitan of cosmopolitans, but you will remain
insular to the day of your death. To you, a man who does not happen to
be an Englishman must of necessity be dirty, and be possessed of a
willingness to sever your jugular within the first few minutes of your
acquaintance. With regard to the accusation you bring against me, I am
willing to declare, in self-defence, that I like burrowing about among
the small restaurants in this quarter, for the simple reason that I meet
men who are useful to me in my work, besides affording me food for
reflection."

The taller man grunted scornfully.

"Conspirators to a man," he answered. "Nihilists, Anarchists, members of
the Mafia, the Camorristi, and the Carbonari. Some day you will enter
into an argument with one of them and a knife thrust between your ribs
will be the result."

"It may be so," returned Victor Fensden, with a shrug of his narrow
shoulders. "Better that, however, than a life of stolid British
priggishness. How you manage to paint as you do when you have so little
of the romantic in your temperament, is a thing I can not for the life
of me understand. That a man who rows, plays football and cricket, and
who will walk ten miles to see a wrestling match or a prize fight,
should be gifted with such a sense of colour and touch, is as great a
mystery to me as the habits of the ichthyosaurus."

And indeed, what Fensden said was certainly true. Godfrey Henderson, one
of the most promising of our younger painters, was as unlike the popular
notion of an artist as could well be found. He had rowed stroke in his
'Varsity boat, had won for himself a fair amount of fame as a good
all-round athlete, and at the same time had painted at least three of
the most beautiful pictures--pictures with a subtle touch of poetry in
them--that the public had seen for many years. His height was fully six
feet one and a half, his shoulders were broad and muscular; he boasted a
pleasant and open countenance, such a one in fact as makes one feel
instinctively that its owner is to be trusted. Taken altogether, a
casual observer would have declared him to be a young country Squire,
and few would have guessed that the greater portion of his life was
spent standing before an easel, palette and brush in hand.

Victor Fensden, his companion, was of an altogether different stamp. He
was at least three inches shorter, was slimly built, and at first
glance would appear to possess a highly nervous and delicate
constitution. In his dress he also differed from his friend. His taste
betrayed a partiality for velvet coats; his ties were usually startling,
so far as colour went; he wore his hair longer than is customary, and
further adorned his face with a neat little Vandyke beard and mustache.
Like Henderson he was also a votary of the brush. His pictures, however,
were of the impressionist order--pretty enough in their way, but lacking
in form, and a trifle vague as to colouring. On occasions he wrote
poetry. There were some who said he was not sincere, that his pictures
were milk-and-water affairs, suggestive of the works of greater men, and
only intended to advertise himself. If that were so, the success they
achieved was comparative. Sad to relate, there were people in London who
had not heard the name of Victor Fensden; while the walls of the
Academy, which he affected so much to despise, had not so far been
honoured by his patronage. "The whole thing," he would say, adopting the
language of our American cousins, "is controlled by a Business Ring; the
Hanging Committee and the dealers stand in with each other. If you
prefer to do bad work deliberately, or at any rate are content to be
commonplace, then you're safe for admission. But if you prefer to do
something which may, or may not, please the multitude, but which will
last longer than Burlington House, or the National Gallery itself, then
you must be content to remain outside." After this tirade, regardless of
the implied sneer at his work, Godfrey would laugh and turn the matter
off by proposing dinner, luncheon, or some other distraction. He knew
the value of his own work, and was content to estimate it accordingly.

Having reached the end of the street down which they had been walking,
when the conversation already described occurred, they found themselves
before the entrance to a small eating-house. One glance was sufficient
to show that it was of the foreign order, so derided by Henderson a few
moments ago before. They entered and looked about them. The room was
long and narrow, and contained some ten or a dozen small tables, three
or four of which were already occupied. Pictures of the German school,
apparently painted by the yard, and interspersed with gaudy portraits of
King Humbert with his mustache, Victor Emmanuel with his wealth of
orders, the latter cheek by jowl with Mr. Garibaldi in his felt hat,
decorated the walls. The proprietor, a small, tubby individual, with the
blackest of black hair and eyes, and an olive skin that glistened like
the marble tops of the tables, came forward to welcome them. At his
request they seated themselves and gave their orders.

"What enjoyment you can find in this sort of thing I can not imagine,"
repeated Henderson, almost irritably, as he looked about him. "If you
take a pleasure in macaroni and tomato, and find poetry in garlic and
_sauer-kraut_, the divine instinct must be even more highly developed in
you than your warmest admirers believe. We might have gone to the club
and have had a decent meal there."

"And have had to listen to a lot of supercilious young idiots chattering
about what they are pleased to call 'their work,'" the other replied.
"No, no, we are better off here. Set your imagination to work, my dear
fellow, and try to believe yourself in Florence, with the moonlight
streaming down on the Ponte Vecchio; or in Naples, and that you can hear
the waves breaking up on the rock under the Castello del Ovo. You might
even be listening to _Funiculi-Finicula_ for the first time."

"Confound you! I never know whether you are serious or not," replied
Godfrey. "Is it a joke you're bringing me here to-night, or have you
some definite object in view?"

He looked across the table at his companion as if he were anxious to
assure himself upon this point before he said anything further.

"What if I _had_ an object?" the other answered. "What if I wanted to do
you a good turn, and by asking you to come here to-night were able to
help you in your work?"

"In that case," Henderson replied, "I should say that it was very kind
of you, but that you have chosen a curious way of showing it. How a low
Italian restaurant in Soho can help me in the work I have on hand I can
not for the life of me understand. Is it possible for you to be more
explicit?"

"If the critics are to be believed you ask too much of me," Fensden
returned, with one of his quiet laughs. "Are they not always declaring
that my principal fault lies in my being too vague? Seriously, however,
I will confess that I had an object in bringing you here. Have I not
heard you grumbling morning, noon, and night, that the model for your
new picture is about as difficult to find as, well, shall we say, an
honest dealer? Now, I believe that the humble mouse was once able to
assist the lion--forgive the implied compliment--in other words, I think
I have achieved the impossible. It will take too long to tell you how I
managed it, but the fact remains that I have discovered the girl you
want, and what is more, she will be here to-night. If, when you have
seen her, you come to the conclusion that she will not answer your
purpose, then I shall be quite willing to confess that my knowledge of a
beautiful woman is only equal to your appreciation of an Italian dinner
in a cheap Soho restaurant. I have spoken!"

"And so you have really brought me here to eat this villainous
concoction," Henderson answered, contemptuously regarding the mess
before him, "in order to show me a face that you think may be useful to
me in my work? My dear fellow, you know as well as I do that we think
differently upon such matters. What you have repeatedly declared to be
the loveliest face you have ever seen, I would not sketch upon a canvas;
while another, that haunts me by day and night, does not raise a shadow
of enthusiasm in you. I am afraid you have had your trouble in vain. But
what abominable stuff this is to be sure! Order some wine, for pity's
sake."

A flask of chianti was brought them, and later some goat's milk cheese.
Upon the latter, bad as it was, Henderson elected to dine. He had barely
finished what was placed before him when an exclamation from his
companion caused him to turn his head in the direction of the door. Two
women were entering the restaurant at the moment, and were approaching
the table at which the young men sat. The elder was a stout and matronly
party, dark of eye, swarthy of skin, and gorgeous in her colouring, so
much so, indeed, that not the slightest doubt could have existed as to
her nationality. She was a daughter of Italy from the top of her head to
the soles of her ample feet. Her companion, however, was modelled on
altogether different lines. She was tall, graceful, and so beautiful, in
a statuesque way, that Henderson felt his heart thrill with pleasure at
the sight of her. Here was the very woman he had been so anxious to
discover. If he had hunted the Continent of Europe through, he could not
have found any one better suited to the requirements of the work he had
in hand. Since it was plain that it was she for whom Fensden was
waiting, it looked as if their tastes, for once, were likely to be the
same.

"What a perfect face!" exclaimed Godfrey, more to himself than to his
companion. "At any hazard, I must induce her to sit to me."

Fensden looked at his friend's face, made a note of the admiration he
saw there, and smiled to himself.

"What did I tell you?" he inquired with a note of triumph in his voice.
"You pooh-poohed the notion that I should ever be able to find you a
model. What do you say now?"

"She is perfect," Henderson replied. "Just look at the eyes, the
beautiful contour of the face, the shapely neck and the hands! Great
Scott! what is a woman of her class doing with such hands? Where did you
meet her?"

"In another of my contemptible restaurants," Fensden answered. "Directly
I saw her, I said to myself: 'This is the model for Godfrey!' I made
inquiries about her, and, finding that she was willing to sit, made an
appointment to meet her here this evening."

By this time Godfrey's antagonism had entirely left him. His only desire
now was to secure this woman, and, with her assistance, to complete his
masterpiece. As soon as the doors of Burlington House were thrown open,
that face should look down upon the picture-lovers of England, or he'd
never touch a brush again.

The two women, by this time, had seated themselves at another table; and
it was almost with a sense of disappointment that Godfrey observed his
ideal commence her meal. To watch her filling her pretty mouth to
overflowing with steaming macaroni was not a pleasing sight. It was too
human and too suggestive of a healthy appetite to harmonize with the
poetic framework in which his imagination had already placed her.

When the ladies had finished their meal, the two young men left their
own table and crossed the room to that at which they were seated.
Fensden said something in Italian, which elicited a beaming smile from
the elder lady, and a gesture of approval from her companion. It was not
the first time in his life that Godfrey Henderson had had occasion to
wish he had taken advantage of the opportunities he had had of acquiring
a knowledge of that melodious language.

"The signora declares that there is no occasion for us to speak Italian,
since she is an accomplished English scholar," said Fensden, with a
sarcastic touch that was not lost upon Henderson.

"The signorina also speaks our villainous tongue as well as if she had
been born and bred within the sound of Bow Bells."

At this supposed compliment, the elder lady smiled effusively, while her
daughter looked gravely from one man to the other as if she were not
quite sure of the value to be placed upon what Fensden had said. Having
received permission, the two men seated themselves at the table, and
Henderson ordered another flask of wine. Under its influence their
acquaintance ripened rapidly. It was not, however, until they had been
talking some little time, that the all-important subject was broached.

"And it is Teresina's portrait that your friend would paint, signor?"
said the elder lady, turning to Fensden. "And why not? 'Tis a beautiful
face, though I, her mother, say it. If the signor will make the--what
you call it--'rangements, it shall be as he wishes."

Less than a minute was sufficient to place the matter on a satisfactory
basis, and it was thereupon settled that the Signorina Cardi should
attend at the studio at a certain hour every week-day until the picture
was finished. Matters having been arranged in this eminently friendly
fashion, the meeting broke up, and with many bows and compliments on
Fensden's and the signora's parts, they bade each other adieu. A few
minutes later, the two young men found themselves once more in the
street.

"My dear fellow, I don't know how to thank you," said Henderson. "I've
been worrying myself more than I can say at not being able to find the
face I wanted. I owe you ten thousand apologies."

But Fensden would not hear of such a thing as an apology. His only
desire was that the picture should be successful, he said.

"I had no idea that he was so fond of me," Henderson remarked to himself
that night when he was alone in his bedroom. "Fancy his hunting through
London for a model for me. He is the last man I should have thought
would have taken the trouble."

Next morning Teresina entered upon her duties, and Godfrey set to work
with more than his usual enthusiasm. The picture was to be his _magnum
opus_, the greatest effort he had yet given to the world. The beautiful
Italian proved to be a good sitter, and her delight as the picture grew
upon the canvas was not to be concealed. Meanwhile Fensden smoked
innumerable cigarettes, composed _fin-de-siècle_ poems in her honour,
and made a number of impressionist studies of her head that his friends
declared would eventually astonish artistic London. At last the picture
was finished and sent in. Then followed that interval of anxious
waiting, so well known to those who have striven for such honours as the
Academy has to bestow. When it was announced that it had passed the
first and second rejections great was the rejoicing in the studio.

"It is your face that has done it, Teresina," cried Godfrey. "I knew
they wouldn't be able to resist that."

"Nay, nay," said the signora, who was present, "such compliments will
turn the child's head. Her face would not be there but for the signor's
cleverness. Well do I remember that when Luigi Maffoni painted the
portrait of Monsignore----"

No one heeded her, so she continued the narrative in an undertone to the
cat on her lap. The day, however, was not destined to end as happily as
it had begun. That evening, when they were alone together in the studio,
Fensden took Godfrey to task.

"Dear boy," he said, as he helped himself to a cigarette from a box on
the table beside him, "I have come to the conclusion that you must go
warily. There are rocks ahead, and, from what I see, you are running
straight for them."

"What on earth is the matter now?" Godfrey asked, stretching himself out
in an easy chair as he spoke. "I know the poise of that head is not
quite what it might be, but haven't I promised you that I'll alter it
to-morrow? Teresina is the very best model in the world, and as patient
as she's beautiful."

"That's exactly what I am complaining of," Victor answered, quietly. "If
she were not, I should not bother my head about her. I feel, in a
measure, responsible, don't you see? If it hadn't been for me, she would
not be here."

The happiness vanished from Godfrey's face as a breath first blurs and
then leaves the surface of a razor.

"I am afraid I don't quite grasp the situation," he said. "You surely
don't suppose that I am falling in love with Teresina--with my model?"

"I am quite aware that you're not," the other answered. "There is my
trouble. If you _were_ in love with her, there might be some hope for
her. But as it is there is none."

Henderson stared at him in complete surprise.

"Have you gone mad?" he asked.

"No one was ever saner," Fensden replied. "Look here, Godfrey, can't you
see the position for yourself? Here is this beautiful Italian girl, whom
you engaged through my agency. You take her from beggary, and put her in
a position of comparative luxury. She has sat to you day after day,
smiled at your compliments, and--well, to put it bluntly, has had every
opportunity and encouragement given her to fall head over ears in love
with you. Is it quite fair, do you think, to let it go on?"

Godfrey was completely taken aback.

"Great Scott! You don't mean to say you think I'm such a beast as to
encourage her?" he cried. "You know as well as I do that I have behaved
toward her only as I have done to all the other models before her.
Surely you would wish me to be civil to the girl, and try to make her
work as pleasant as possible for her? If you think I've been a
blackguard, say so outright!"

"My dear Godfrey, nothing could be further from my thoughts," answered
Fensden in his usual quiet voice, that one of his friends once compared
to the purring of a cat. "I should be a poor friend, however, if I were
to allow you to go on as you are going without an expostulation. Can not
you look at it in the same light as I do? Are you so blind that you can
not see that this girl is falling every day more deeply in love with
you? The love-light gleams in her eyes whenever she looks at you; she
sees an implied caress even in the gentle pats you give her drapery,
when you arrange it on the stage there; a tender solicitude for her
welfare when you tell her to hurry home before it rains. What is the end
of it all to be? I suppose you do not intend making her your wife?"

"My wife?" said Godfrey, blankly, as if the idea were too preposterous
to have ever occurred to him. "Surely you must be jesting to talk like
this?"

"I am not jesting with you, if you are not jesting with her," the other
replied. "You must see for yourself that the girl worships the very
ground you walk upon. However, there is still time for matters to be put
right. She has so far only looked at the affair from her own standpoint;
what is more, I do not want her to lose her employment with you, since
it means so much to her. What I do want is, that you should take hold of
yourself in time and prevent her from being made unhappy while you have
the opportunity."

"You may be quite sure that I will do so," Henderson replied, more
stiffly than he had yet spoken. "I am more sorry than I can say that
this should have occurred. Teresina is a good girl, and I would no more
think of causing her pain than I would of striking my own sister. And
now I'm off to bed. Good-night."

True to his promise, his behaviour next day, so far as Teresina was
concerned, was so different that she regarded him with surprise, quite
unable to understand the reason of the change. She thought she must have
offended him in some way, and endeavoured by all the means in her power
to win herself back into his good graces. But the more she tried to
conciliate him, the further he withdrew into his shell. Victor Fensden,
smoking his inevitable cigarette, waited to see what the result would
be. There was a certain amount of pathos in the situation, and a close
observer might have noticed that the strain was telling upon both of the
actors in it, the girl in particular. For the next fortnight or so, the
moral temperature of the studio was not as equable as of old. Godfrey,
who was of too honest a nature to make a good conspirator, chafed at the
part he was being called upon to play, while Teresina, who only knew
that she loved, and that her love was not returned, was divided between
her affections for the man and a feeling of wounded dignity for herself.

"I wish to goodness I could raise sufficient money to get out of London
for six months," said Godfrey, one evening, as they sat together in the
studio. "I'd be off like a shot."

Fensden knew why he said this.

"I am sorry I can't help you," he replied. "I am about as badly off as
yourself. But surely the great picture sold well?"

"Very well; for me, that is to say," Godfrey replied. "But I had to part
with most of it next day."

He did not add that he had sent most of it to his widowed sister, who
was very badly off and wanted help to send her boy to college.

A short silence followed; then Fensden said: "If you had money what
would you do?"

"Go abroad," said Godfrey quickly. "The strain of this business is more
than I can stand. If I had a few hundreds to spare we'd go together and
not come back for six months. By that time everything would have settled
down to its old normal condition."

How little did he guess that the very thing that seemed so impossible
was destined to come to pass!




CHAPTER II


One morning a week or so after the conversation described at the end of
the previous chapter, Godfrey Henderson found lying on the table in the
studio a long, blue envelope, the writing upon which was of a neat and
legal character. He did not own a halfpenny in the world, so what this
could mean he was not able to imagine. Animated by a feeling of
curiosity he opened the envelope and withdrew the contents. He read the
letter through the first time without altogether realizing its meaning;
then, with a vague feeling of surprise, he read it again. He had just
finished his second perusal of it when Fensden entered the room. He
glanced at Godfrey's face, and said, as if in inquiry:

"Anything the matter? You look scared!"

"A most extraordinary thing," returned Godfrey. "You have heard me talk
of old Henderson of Detwich?"

"Your father's brother? The old chap who sends you a brace of grouse
every season, and asks when you are going to give up being a starving
painter and turn your attention to business? What of him?"

"He is dead and buried," answered Godfrey. "This letter is from his
lawyer to say that I am his heir, in other words that Detwich passes to
me, with fifteen thousand a year on which to keep it up, and that they
are awaiting my instructions."

There was a pause which lasted for upward of a quarter of a minute. Then
Fensden held out his hand.

"My dear fellow, I am sure I congratulate you most heartily," he said.
"I wish you luck with all my heart. The struggling days are over now.
For the future you will be able to follow your art as you please. You
will also be able to patronize those who are not quite so fortunate.
Fifteen thousand a year and a big country place! Whatever will you do
with yourself?"

"That is for the Future to decide," Godfrey replied.

That afternoon he paid a visit to the office of the firm of solicitors
who had written to him. They corroborated the news contained in their
letter, and were both assiduous in their attentions and sincere in
their desire to serve him.

Four days later it was arranged that Godfrey and Fensden should start
for the Continent. Before doing so, however, the former purchased a neat
little gold watch and chain which he presented to Teresina, accompanied
by a cheque equivalent to six months' salary, calculated at the rate she
had been receiving.

"Don't forget me, Teresina," he said, as he looked round the now
dismantled studio. "Let me know how you get on, and remember if ever you
want a friend I shall be only too glad to serve you."

At that moment Fensden hailed him from the cab outside, bidding him
hurry, or he feared they would miss their train. Godfrey accordingly
held out his hand.

"Good-bye," he said, and though he would have given worlds to have
prevented it, a lump rose in his throat as he said it, and his voice was
so shaky that he felt sure she must notice it.

Then, bidding her give the key to the landlord when she left the studio,
he went out into the street, and jumped into a cab, which next moment
started off for the station. How was he to know that Teresina was lying
in a dead faint upon the studio floor?

When they left England for the Continent Godfrey had only the vaguest
notion of what they were going to do after they left Paris. Having spent
a fortnight in the French capital they journeyed on to Switzerland, put
in a month at Lucerne, three weeks in Rome, and found themselves, in the
middle of November, at Luxor, looking upon the rolling waters of the
Nile. Their sketch books were surfeited with impressions, and they
themselves were filled with a great content. They had both visited the
Continent on numerous occasions before, but this was the first time that
they had made the acquaintance of the "Land of the Pharaohs." Godfrey
was delighted with everything he saw, and already he had the ideas for a
dozen new pictures in his head.

"I had no notion that any sunset could be so gorgeous," he said one day,
when they sat together watching the ball of fire descend to his rest on
the western horizon of the desert. "The colours have not yet been
discovered that could possibly do it justice. For the future I shall
come out here every year."

"Don't be too sure, my friend," said Fensden. "There was a time when
such a thing might have been possible, but circumstances have changed
with you. You are no longer the erratic Bohemian artist, remember, but a
man with a stake in the country, and a county magnate."

"But what has the county magnate to do with the question at issue?"
Godfrey inquired.

"Everything in the world," retorted his companion. "In virtue of your
new position you will have to marry. The future Mrs. Henderson, in all
probability, will also have a stake in the country. She will have great
ideas, moreover, connected with what she will term the improvement of
the land, and, beyond a trip to the Italian lakes at long intervals,
will not permit you to leave the country of her forefathers."

"What a strange fellow you are, to be sure!" replied Godfrey. "To hear
you talk one would think that the possession of money--and, by Jove,
it's a very decent thing to have when you come to consider it--must
necessarily relegate a man to the region of the commonplace. Why
shouldn't I marry a girl who is fond of travelling?"

"Because, as a rule, Fate ordains otherwise," Fensden replied. "I think
I can describe the sort of girl you will marry."

"Then do so, by all means," said Godfrey, "I'll smoke another cigar
while you are arranging it."

"In the first place she will be tall. Your idea of the ludicrous would
not let you marry a small woman. She will have large hands and feet, and
the latter will be heavily shod. That is how in London I always pick out
the girls who live in the country. She will be handsome rather than
pretty, for the reason that your taste lies in that direction. She will
not flirt, because she will be in love with you. She will be an
admirable housewife of the solid order, and while I should be prepared
to trust to her judgment in the matter of dogs and horses, roots, crops,
and the dairy farm, finer susceptibilities she will have none. Do you
like the picture?"

"Scarcely," said Henderson; "and yet, when all is said and done a man
might do worse."

There was a pause, during which each man knew what the other was
thinking about. Godfrey was recalling Teresina's beautiful face, and
Fensden knew that he was doing so.

"By the way," said Fensden, very quietly, "I noticed this morning that
you received a letter bearing an Italian post-mark. Would it be
indiscreet if I inquired your correspondent's name?"

"I don't see why there should be any mystery about it," Henderson
replied. "It was from Teresina."

"From Teresina?" said the other, with a look of surprise.

"Yes, from Teresina," his friend answered. "I made her promise before we
left home that should she leave England she would let me have her
address, and, if she were in need of anything, she would communicate
with me. You can see the letter if you like. Here it is."

He took the letter in question from his pocket and handed it to his
companion. It consisted of only a few lines and gave the writer's
address with the hope that the time might soon come when she would again
be allowed to sit to "her kind patron."

Victor, having perused it, handed it back to Godfrey, who replaced it in
his pocket without a word.

Two days later they returned by steamer to Cairo, where they took up
their abode at the Mena House Hotel. Godfrey preferred it, because it
was some distance from the dust of the city, and Fensden because he
averred that the sneer on the face of the Sphinx soothed him more than
all the luxuries of Cairo. As it was, he sat in the veranda of the hotel
and made impressionist sketches of dragomen, camels, and the
backsheesh-begging Bedouins of the Pyramids. Godfrey found it impossible
to work.

"I am absorbing ideas," he said. "The work will come later on."

In the meantime he played polo in the Ghezireh, shot jackals in the
desert, flirted with the charming tourists in the verandas of the hotel,
and enjoyed himself immensely in his own fashion. Then one day he
received a telegram from England announcing the fact that his mother was
seriously ill, and asking him to return without delay.

"I am sincerely sorry," said Fensden, politely. Then he added,
regretfully: "I suppose our tour must now, like all good things, come to
an end. When do you leave?"

"By to-morrow morning's train," he answered. "I shall pick up the mail
boat at Ismailia and travel in her to Naples. If all goes well I shall
be in England to-morrow week. But look here, Victor, when you come to
think of it there's not the least necessity for you to come, too. It
would be no end of a shame to rob you of your holiday. Why should you
not go on and finish the tour by yourself? Why not come with me as far
as Port Said, and catch the steamer for Jaffa there?"

"It's very good of you, my dear Godfrey," said Fensden, "but----"

"Let there be no 'buts,'" the other returned. "It's all arranged. When
you come home you shall describe your adventures to me."

Needless to say, in the end Fensden agreed to the proposal, and next day
they accordingly bade each other good-bye on the promenade deck of the
mail steamer that was to take Henderson as far as Naples. Fensden was
beginning to realize that it was by no means unpleasant to have a rich
and generous friend. Poverty was doubtless romantic and artistic, but a
well-filled pocket-book meant good hotels and the best of wines and
living.

While the boat ploughed her way across the Mediterranean, an idea
occurred to Godfrey, and he resolved to act upon it. It was neither more
nor less than to utilize what little time was given him in Naples in
seeking out Teresina and assuring himself of her comfort in her old
home. He had quite convinced himself by this time that any affection he
might once have felt for her was now dead and buried. For this reason he
saw no possible danger in paying her a visit. "Victor made more of it,"
he argued, "than the circumstances had really warranted. Had he not said
anything about it, there would have been no trouble, and in that case
Teresina would still be in London, and sitting to me."

As soon as the vessel was in harbour, he collected his luggage and made
his way ashore. A cab conveyed him to an hotel he had patronized before;
and when he was safely installed there, and realized that he could not
proceed on his journey until the next morning, he resolved to set out in
search of Teresina. Producing her letter from his pocket-book he made a
note of the address, and then started upon his errand, to discover that
the signorina Cardi's home took some little finding. At last, however,
he succeeded, only to be informed by an intelligent neighbour that the
signora was not at home, while the signorina had gone out some fifteen
minutes before. Considerably disappointed, he turned to descend the
steps to find himself face to face with Teresina herself as he stepped
into the street. She uttered a little exclamation of astonishment and
delight at seeing him.

"How is it that you are here, signor?" she inquired, when they had
greeted each other. "I did not know that you were in Naples."

"I only arrived this afternoon," he answered. "I am on my way to
England."

"To England?" she said, and then uttered a little sigh as if the very
name of that country conjured up sad memories. "It is cold and wet in
England now; and do you remember how the studio chimney smoked?"

This apparently irrelevant remark caused them both to laugh, but their
mirth had not altogether a happy sound.

"I am going to give up the studio," he answered. "I expect that for the
future I shall do my work in the country. But you are not looking well,
Teresina!"

"I am quite well," she answered, hurriedly. How was he to know that for
many weeks past she had been eating her heart out for love of him? If
the whole world seemed dark to her now it was because he, her sun, no
longer shone upon her.

"And your mother, the signora, how wrong of me not to have inquired
after her. I trust she is well?"

"Quite well, signor," she replied. "She often talks of you. She is at
Sorrento to-day, but she may be back at any minute. She would have liked
to have seen you, signor, to have thanked you for your great goodness to
us."

"Nonsense," said Henderson, hurriedly. "It is the other way round. My
thanks are due to you. Had it not been for your face, Teresina, my
picture would never have been such a success. Do you know that several
ladies, great ladies in England, said that they would give anything to
be so beautiful? I don't think I shall ever do a better piece of work
than that."

He had just said this when he noticed that a young man, tall, slim, and
very dark, had approached them unperceived, and was now glaring angrily
at him. Teresina had also become aware of his presence, and was visibly
affected by it. Whereas only a moment before she had been all sunshine
and delight at seeing Henderson once more, now she was quite the
reverse.

"Is this man a friend of yours?" Godfrey asked, in English. "He seems
to be put out about something."

"It is only Tomasso Dardini," she answered, as if the explanation were
sufficient. "He is quick-tempered, but he means no harm."

"Then I wish to goodness he'd go away; he glares as if he would like to
eat me. If I may hazard a guess, Teresina, I should say that he is in
love with you."

"He is very foolish," she answered, and a flush spread over her face.
"Some day, if he is not very careful, he will get into trouble."

"I should not be at all surprised to hear it," Godfrey replied.

Then, turning to the man in question, he signed to him to be off about
his business. For a moment the youth seemed inclined to refuse, but
presently he thought better of it, and marched off down the street,
looking back now and again as if to see whether the Englishman and the
girl were still conversing together.

"And now, Teresina, I have a little plan to propose to you," said
Godfrey, when the other had turned the corner. "As I told you just now,
I am on my way to England, and therefore, shall only be able to spend
to-night in Naples. From the announcements I see they are playing
'Faust' at the Opera-House. Why should not you and your mother dine with
me, and go there afterward? It would be a pleasant way of spending the
evening, and we could talk of old days."

Teresina clapped her hands with delight. In her love of the Opera she
was a genuine Neapolitan.

"It would be lovely," she cried. "My mother will come, I feel sure. It
is kind of you, signor."

It was thereupon arranged that they should meet at a certain place,
dine, and then go on to the Opera together. Having settled this,
Henderson returned to his hotel, whiled away the time as best he could,
and when the hour arrived, set off to the rendezvous.

Punctual to the moment he put in an appearance at the place. It was a
restaurant not unlike that in which he had first met Teresina and her
mother. He could not help recalling that memorable evening as he waited
on the pavement outside, and his one wish was that Fensden could have
been there to have shared the entertainment with him. When the signora
and her daughter arrived, it was plain that they regarded the occasion
an important one. They were both attired in their best, and, so far as
colour went, the signora herself was not unlike a bird of Paradise.
Teresina was more soberly clad, but Henderson noticed that a necklace
with which he had once presented her, as a memento of a certain piece of
extra work she had done for him, encircled her slender throat. As he
looked at it, he thought of the day on which he had given it to her, and
as the remembrance occurred to him, he wondered whether it was wise on
his part to play with fire for a second time. The signora greeted him
with southern volubility, and, as soon as he could get in a word,
Henderson suggested that they should enter the restaurant. Having done
so, they seated themselves at one of the small tables, and he gave his
orders. It was a banquet that was destined to be remembered with
pleasure by two of the party, and also by a third, for another and less
romantic reason.

"And so you are returning to England, signor?" said the signora, when
the first pangs of her hunger had been assuaged. Then, remembering the
circumstances connected with the latter portion of their stay in London,
she added, pathetically: "I think if it were possible, I should not be
sorry to return--even though the winter is so cold and it rains so
often."

"If you feel as if you would like to return, why do you not do so?"
asked Godfrey, with a quickness that caused Teresina to look up at him
in surprise, and then to look down again with equal celerity. "I am sure
Teresina could get plenty of employment. I would do all I could to help
her. For my own part, I never could understand why you left so quickly."

If he had reflected for a moment, he would probably have been able to
arrive at an understanding of the reason that had prompted her
departure. He was too modest a man, however, to think of such a thing.
Nevertheless, he changed the conversation by making inquiries as to
their present life in Naples, and then went on to talk of Fensden, who
at that moment, could they have seen him, was fast asleep in a railway
carriage, on his way from Jaffa to Jerusalem. The signora had never been
partial to the impressionist artist and poet, and she had a vague idea
that it was to that gentleman's agency that they owed the flight of the
owner, and the consequent cessation of Teresina's employment at the
studio. She was too prudent, however, to say anything on that score to
Godfrey. She knew the friendship that existed between the two men; and
she was also aware that her daughter, who was the possessor of a quick
temper, and a tongue that she could use when she liked, would brook no
disparagement of either Mr. Henderson or his friend.

"As to returning to England, we must think it over," she said,
complacently, when Godfrey had filled her glass with champagne for the
fourth or fifth time. "It would make another great change in our
affairs, but Teresina is young, and there is nothing for us to do in
Naples. I could wish that she should marry, signor, but she will not
hear of it. I tell her the time may come when it will be too late. But
girls do not listen to their elders nowadays."

Godfrey glanced at Teresina's face to find that it had suddenly become
very pale. He hastened to render her assistance without delay by
twitting her mother as to the number of sweethearts she herself had had,
much to that lady's delight. This crisis having been smoothed over, he
paid the bill and they left the restaurant.

Darkness had fallen by this time, a fact which may have accounted for
the young man's uncertainty as to whether he did or did not recognise
the figure of a man who was watching the doorway from the other side of
the street. It certainly looked as if it belonged to Tomasso Dardini;
but he said nothing on this point to either of his guests. He would be
leaving Naples in the morning, he argued, and no necessity existed for
making a fuss about it. If the silly young man were jealous, the morrow
would remove the cause; and after that it would not matter very much
whether he were aware of their visit to the Opera or not. With Teresina
beside him and the signora on the other side, they entered the theatre
and took their seats. The house was crowded, and the Opera itself was
received with that critical appreciation so characteristic of the
Neapolitan theatre-goer. Whether Godfrey enjoyed it as much as his
neighbours is a question that admits of some doubt. He certainly found
pleasure in studying the expressions that flitted across Teresina's face
as she watched what went on upon the stage; but I scarcely think it
went further. When it was over, he escorted them back to their dwelling,
and bade them good-bye upon the threshold.

"Good-bye, Teresina," he said. "It may not be very long before we meet
in London. Do you remember the little place where I first saw you? I
think, when I get back, I must dine there once more, if only for old
association's sake."

"Good-bye, signor," she said, giving him her hand after the English
fashion. "It was kind of you to think of us, and to give us such
pleasure as you have done to-night."

"I have enjoyed it," he replied, and then, bidding her return soon to
London, he left her, and made his way down the narrow, evil-smelling
street toward the quarter in which his hotel was situated. He was still
fifty yards from the corner when a figure emerged from a doorway and
hurried quickly after him, keeping on the dark side of the street.
Leaving the thoroughfare in which Teresina's house was located, he
employed a short cut with which he had become acquainted that afternoon.
He had scarcely entered this, however, before he became aware of a light
footstep behind him. Turning quickly, he found a man, whom he
immediately recognised, within a few feet of him. Muttering something in
Italian, he raised his arm, and Godfrey saw that he held a poniard in
his hand. With the quickness of a practised athlete, he seized the
uplifted wrist with his left hand, while with his right he delivered a
blow that took the would-be assassin beneath the chin and sent him
sprawling upon his back in the road. Picking up the dagger that the
other had let fall, he placed it in his pocket, saying, as he did so: "I
will keep this, my friend, as a memento." Then, having made sure that
the other had no intention of following him, he continued his walk,
little dreaming how strangely that incident was to affect his future
life.




CHAPTER III


If I were given my choice of all the charming residences in the county
of Midlandshire, I fancy I should decide in favour of Detwich Hall. To
my thinking it is, in every respect, an ideal residence. While
sufficiently old to have a history (one of the Charleses spent some days
in hiding there), it has proved itself capable of being adapted to
modern ideas of comfort. The main portion was built, I believe, toward
the close of the reign of the Virgin Queen; a wing was added by the
owner who occupied it in the time of the early Georges; while the father
of the man who had bequeathed the property to Godfrey, was responsible
for the stables, and a somewhat obscure wing on the southern front. It
was admirably situated in the centre of a park of some three hundred
acres, and was approached by a picturesque drive, about half a mile
long, which ran for some distance along the banks of an ornamental
lake. On this lake, by the way, some of the finest duck shooting in the
county is to be obtained. In his boyhood Godfrey had spent many happy
days there, little dreaming that some day it would become his own
property. Indeed, it is quite certain it would not have done so had his
cousin Wilfred not been killed in India in the performance of a piece of
desperate heroism that will be remembered as long as a certain native
regiment exists. As for Godfrey, the old man had always liked the boy,
but had been bitterly disappointed when he had resolved to embark upon
an artistic career instead of playing the part of a country gentleman,
as so many of his ancestors had done before him. To have proved himself
a capable Master of Hounds would have been in the old bachelor's eyes a
greater distinction than to have painted the finest picture that ever
graced the walls of Burlington House. Yet in his heart he knew the power
of the young man, and honoured him for the dogged persistence with which
he had fought the uphill fight of a painter's life.

"Well, well, I suppose he'll come out of it all right in the end," he
was wont to say to himself when he thought of the matter. "He'll be
none the worse for having known a little poverty. I like the boy and he
likes me, and, please God, he'll do his best by the dear old place when
he comes into it. I should like to see him in it."

This, unfortunately, he was not able to do; but could he have heard the
universal expression of approbation so lavishly bestowed upon the young
master of Detwich when he had been six months in possession he would
have felt that his generosity had been rewarded. Indeed, there could be
no sort of doubt as to Godfrey's popularity. He was received by the
county with open arms, and by his tenantry with a quiet appreciation
that showed they knew how to value the blood that ran in his veins
without making a fuss about it. Owing to the short time that had elapsed
since his uncle's death it was necessarily impossible for him to see
very much society, but those who partook of his hospitality returned
home not only delighted with their host, but also with the quality of
their entertainment.

"An acquisition, a decided acquisition," said old Sir Vivian Devereux,
the magnate of the district. "His idea of game preservation is
excellent, and he is prepared to support the hunt with the utmost
liberality. All he wants to make him perfect is a wife."

On hearing this Lady Devereux looked at her lord and her lord looked at
her. Between them they had a very shrewd idea that they knew where to
look for the future mistress of Detwich Hall. Mistress Margaret, their
daughter, called by her friends Molly, who had that season made her bow
before her Majesty, said nothing, but maybe that was because she did not
think there was anything to be said. She had her own ideas on the
subject. She had seen the young squire of Detwich, though he had not
been aware of the fact, and, being an unaffected, straightforward
English girl, without prudery or conceit of any sort, had come to the
conclusion that she liked the look of him. Eligible young men were
scarce in the neighbourhood, and if she dreamt dreams of her own who
shall blame her? Not I, for one.

Three months had passed since Godfrey had escorted Teresina and her
mother to the Opera. The summons which had brought him home so hurriedly
had, fortunately, proved to be a false alarm. Though his mother had been
seriously ill, there had not been so much danger as they had led him to
suppose. A month at Torquay had completely restored her to health, and
now she was back at Detwich once more, as hale and hearty an old lady as
any to be found in the kingdom. Assisted by her youngest daughter,
Kitty, she welcomed the wanderer home with every sign of delight.

Godfrey, unlike so many other people, had the good fortune to be as
popular in his own family circle as he was out of it, and he and his
youngest sister had been on the best of terms from the days when they
had gone bird's-nesting together, until the time when she had assisted
him in packing his first picture for the Academy. Since then, however,
she had not seen so much of him.

"Kit's no end of a brick," he had been heard to say, "and the fellow who
marries her may consider himself lucky."

It was scarcely to be wondered at, therefore, if Miss Devereux and
Kitty, living as they did within two miles of each other, should soon
have become intimate. They were in the habit of seeing each other
several times a week, a fact which Godfrey, from a distance, had felt
somewhat inclined to resent.

"When I get home I shall find this girl continually in the house," he
said to himself; and when he _did_ arrive and the many charming
qualities of her friend had been explained to him he did not feel any
the more disposed to be cordial.

"I can see what it will be," he said to his sister, "I shall not catch a
glimpse of you now."

"Perhaps you won't want to when you meet Molly," was the arch rejoinder.
"You have no idea what a pretty girl she is. They say she created a
tremendous sensation when she was presented this year. Folks raved about
her."

"The bigger duffers they," was the uncompromising reply. "You have one
fault, my dear girl. Ever since I have known you your swans have
invariably turned out to be geese. I fancy I can realize what Miss
Devereux will be like."

"In that case pray describe her," was the saucy rejoinder, and Miss
Kitty made a very pretty losing hazard (they were playing billiards at
the time), after which she failed to score and chalked her cue.

Now it seems scarcely fair to say so, but Godfrey, being taken at a
disadvantage, fell back on what can be only considered by all honest
people a mean device. In describing Miss Devereux he used the almost
identical terms used by Fensden when he had attempted to draw a picture
of his friend's future wife.

"You are quite at sea," said Miss Kitty, patting her dainty shoe with
the end of her cue as she spoke. "Some day, if you are not very careful,
I will tell Miss Devereux what you have said about her. She would never
forgive you the large feet and thick boots."

"As you are strong be merciful," said Godfrey, potting the red into the
right-hand pocket and going into the left himself. "I don't mind
admitting without prejudice that I am getting anxious to see this
paragon. When do you think she will next honour you with her society?"

"On Friday," Kitty replied. "We have taken up wood-carving together, and
she is coming to see some patterns I bought in town last week."

"In that case we will defer consideration of her merits and
demerits--for I suppose she has some--until then," Godfrey replied, and
then once more going into the pocket off the red he announced the game
as standing at one hundred to ninety-five.

On the following afternoon he had occasion to drive to the market town.
It was a bright, clear day, with a promise of frost in the air, and as
his dog-cart rolled along the high road, drawn by a tandem team he had
purchased the previous week, he felt as well satisfied with himself and
his position in the world as it was possible for a young man to be. His
business transacted in the town he turned his horses' heads homeward
once more. The handsome animals, knowing that they were on their way to
their stables, stepped out bravely, and many an approving glance was
thrown at the good-looking young squire of Detwich by folk upon the
road. He had completed upward of half his journey when he became aware
that a young lady, who had appeared from a by-road, was making her way
in the same direction as himself.

"Whoever she is she certainly sits her horse well," he said to himself,
as he watched her swinging along at a slow canter on the soft side of
the road. "I wonder who she can be?"

As soon as the turf gave place to hard metal she pulled her hack up and
proceeded at a walk. This very soon brought Godfrey alongside, and as
he passed he managed to steal a glance at a very pretty face and as neat
a figure as he ever remembered to have seen.

"I wonder who she can be?" he repeated. And as he continued his drive he
meditated on the subject.

On the Friday following he was unexpectedly called to town. His
solicitors desired an interview with him respecting the purchase of a
farm, and he had no option but to comply with their request. As luck
would have it, however, he was able to return by a somewhat earlier
train than he expected, and was just in time to hear from his butler
that afternoon tea had been carried into the drawing-room.

"Are there any visitors?" he inquired.

"Miss Devereux, sir," said the man; "she came to lunch."

"I had forgotten that she was to be here to-day," he said to himself as
he crossed the hall in the direction of the drawing-room. "I wonder what
she will be like?"

As every one who has visited Detwich is aware, the drawing-room is an
exceedingly handsome room. It is long and lofty, if possible a little
_too_ long for cosiness. This fault, if fault it be, is amply atoned
for, however, by a capitally constructed ingle-nook, in which it was the
custom for the ladies to take afternoon tea. Godfrey strolled across the
floor to this charming contrivance, little guessing what was in store
for him. A lady was sitting with her back to him holding a cup of tea in
her hand.

"I don't think you have met Miss Devereux, Godfrey," said his sister.

"I have not yet had that pleasure," he replied. Then to himself he
added: "Good gracious! It's the fair equestrienne." Then aloud: "I've
heard a good deal of you from Kitty, Miss Devereux."

"And I of you," she answered. "You seem to have been everywhere, and to
have seen everything. Doubtless you find this part of the world very
dull."

"Not at all," he answered. "I am extremely fond of the country, and
particularly of that about here."

If the truth were told I fancy he had never thought much about it until
that moment. For the future, however, under a certain magic influence,
he was to view it with very different eyes.

"In spite of what some people say," he continued, "I consider English
country scenery charming."

"And yet it must be very beautiful abroad. Kitty read me one or two of
your letters, and from the description you gave of the various places
you had visited, I gathered that you thought nothing could be so
beautiful on earth."

"No doubt they are very beautiful," he answered. "But for my part give
me the old-world peace of England. There is certainly nothing like that
to be found elsewhere. I would rather stand on the hill yonder and look
down the valley in summer-time, than gaze upon the Rhine at Heidelberg,
or Naples harbour at daybreak, or visit ancient Philæ by moonlight."

What further heresies this young man would have pledged himself to in
his enthusiasm I can not say. Fortunately for him, however, the vicar
and his wife were announced at that moment, and a distraction was thus
caused. Until that moment Miss Kitty had been regarding him with
steadfast eyes. Clever beyond all other men, as she considered her
brother, she had never seen him come out of his shell like this before.
Hitherto he had been rather given to pooh-poohing the country, and had
once been known even to assert that "London and Paris were the only two
places in which it was possible for a civilized man to live." What was
the reason of this sudden change?

The vicar was a tall man with a pompous air, who looked forward some day
to being a bishop, and had already assumed the appearance and manners of
one. His wife, on the other hand, was small, and of a somewhat peevish
disposition. It was currently reported that the husband and wife spent
the greater portion of their time in squabbling, while it was certain
that they contradicted each other in public with an openness and
frequency that at times was apt to be a little embarrassing.

"Possibly I may have been wrong," said the vicar, when he had seated
himself and had taken a cup of tea from his hostess's hands, "but did I
not hear you extolling the beauties of a country life as I entered the
room, Mr. Henderson?"

He put the question as if it were one of world-wide importance, which,
answered carelessly, might involve great international complications.
Then, without waiting for an answer, he continued: "For my part, while
admitting that a country life is possessed of many charms, with which
the Metropolis can not compare, I must go on to say that there is a
breadth, if I may so express it, in London life that is quite lacking
outside."

His wife saw her opportunity, and, as was her habit, was quick to take
advantage of it.

"You have never had any experience of London life, William, so how can
you possibly tell?" she said, sharply.

"My dear, I venture to say that it is a generally admitted fact," her
husband replied.

"Generally admitted facts are as often as not rubbish," retorted the
lady with some asperity. "What I say is, let a man do his duty wherever
he is, and make the best of what he's got, without grumbling."

There was an unmistakable innuendo in this speech, and for a moment an
awkward silence ensued.

"I hear you have built a new conservatory, Mr. Henderson?" said Miss
Devereux, as if to change the subject.

"It is just completed," said Godfrey. "Would you care to see it?"

A general desire to inspect this new wonder having been expressed,
Godfrey led the way from the room, contriving, when all had passed out,
to take up his position beside their youngest visitor.

"Will you take pity upon a stranger in the land?" he said, "and give me
some information?"

"What can I tell you?" she asked.

He glanced at the vicar and his wife, who were some little distance in
front.

"Do they always squabble like this?" he inquired.

"Yes, invariably," she replied. "We are used to it, but strangers are
apt to find it embarrassing. I really believe the habit of squabbling
has grown upon them until they have become so accustomed to it that they
do not notice it. By the way, Mr. Henderson, there is one question of
vital importance I must decide with you. Are you going to hunt?"

As a matter of fact Godfrey had made up his mind to do so occasionally,
but now, remembering that Miss Devereux possessed the reputation of a
second Diana, he spoke as if it were the hunting that had mainly induced
him to live in Midlandshire. He registered a vow that he would purchase
a stud immediately, and that he would look upon missing a run as a sin
that could only be expurgated by religiously attending the next.

By this time they had reached the new conservatory, which adjoined the
studio Godfrey had built for himself. It was a handsome building, and
gave a distinction to that side of the house which it certainly had
lacked before.

"Admirable, admirable," said the vicar, complacently. "It reminds me of
the palm-house at Kew."

"It is twenty years since you were at Kew, William; how can you possibly
remember what the palm-house is like?" retorted his wife.

"My dear, I have always been noted for the excellence of my memory," the
vicar replied. "I assure you I have the most vivid recollection of the
house in question."

"You mislaid your spectacles this morning, and if I hadn't seen you put
them in your pocket you would never have thought of looking for them
there," said his wife, to whom this fact appeared to be relative to the
matter at issue.

From the conservatory to the studio was a natural transition, and the
latest work upon the easel was duly inspected and admired.

"I remember your picture in the Academy last year, Mr. Henderson," said
Miss Devereux. "I can assure you that it brought the tears into my
eyes."

"It is very kind of you to say so," he said, feeling that no compliment
that had ever been paid him was so much worth having.

Then a luminous idea occurred to him.

"I wonder if, some day, you would let me paint you a little picture?" he
asked, almost timidly.

"I really could not think of such a thing," his companion replied. "Your
time is too valuable to be wasted in that way."

"I shall paint one, nevertheless," he replied. "In return, perhaps, you
will instruct me in the ways of the Midlandshire hunt?"

"I shall be delighted," she answered. "You must make Kitty come too."

Godfrey promised to do so, but for once in his life he was ungallant
enough to think that he could dispense with his sister's society.
Presently Miss Devereux's cart was announced and Kitty and Godfrey
accompanied her to the front door. She kissed Kitty and then held out
her hand to Godfrey.

"Good-bye, Mr. Henderson," she said. "Remember that the hounds meet at
Spinkley Grove on Thursday, at eleven o'clock, when you will be
permitted an opportunity of making the acquaintance of the Master and
the Hunt."

"I shall be there without fail," he answered, as he helped her into the
cart and arranged her rug for her. She thereupon nodded to the groom,
who left the ponies' heads and jumped on to the step behind as the cart
passed him, with an adroitness that was the outcome of long practice. A
moment later the vehicle had turned the corner of the drive and was lost
to view.

"Well?" said Kitty as they turned to go in.

"Well," Godfrey replied.

"You like her?"

"Very much indeed," he answered, and as they passed down the hall
together he made an important decision to himself. "Provided she will
have me," he said, "I think I have found my wife."




CHAPTER IV


More than a month had elapsed since Godfrey had made his début as a
recognised member of the Midlandshire Hunt. It is also necessary to
state that during that period he had seen a good deal of pretty Miss
Molly Devereux, who, faithful to the promise she had given him, had
shown him a large amount of the country, with the fences, hedges, and
ditches thereof. She was also the person who was mainly responsible for
the large sum of money he had spent on horseflesh during that time. As a
matter of fact, this impressionable young man was head over ears in
love, and to prove it, he neglected his work, imperilled his neck, and,
as his mother remarked, ran an almost daily risk of coming to an early
grave through waiting about on the outskirts of damp coverts, to say
nothing of the long, wet rides home on wintry evenings.

"I can not understand why you do it," said the old lady, who, by the
way, was not nearly so obtuse as she pretended to be. "When you first
came home from abroad, you declared that the hunting would never possess
sufficient attraction to take you out on a damp day. Now you are never
happy unless you are in the saddle."

"It's a good healthy exercise, mother," said Kitty, with the suspicion
of a twinkle in her eyes. "Besides, Godfrey has taken such a liking to
Sir George Penistone, the Master, that he is never happy when he is
parted from him."

Now if there was one person in the country for whom Godfrey entertained
a profound distaste, it was for the gentleman in question. Sir George
was known to have been desperately in love with Miss Devereux ever since
he had left the 'Varsity; but, while he was plucky enough in the saddle,
and would ride his horse at anything that an animal could be expected to
jump, and at a good many that it could not, he had never been able to
screw up his courage sufficiently to broach the subject to her. Finding
that he had a rival in the field, however, had given him a fillip, and,
in consequence, relations between the two young men were as strained as
it was possible for them to be, and yet to allow them to remain on
speaking terms. Whether the young lady herself was aware of this is more
than I can say; if she were she gave no sign of it, but treated them
both with the same impartiality. Certain other ladies of the hunt vowed
that she was a heartless flirt, and that she was playing one man off
against the other. Such uncharitable sentiments, however, could only be
expected from people who would have acted in the same fashion had they
been placed in a similar position.

It has been said by a well-known writer, who, for all we know to the
contrary, was a crusty old bachelor, and therefore well qualified to
speak upon the matter, "that the very uncertainty of love is one of its
greatest charms." I fancy that Godfrey Henderson, at that particular
time, would not have agreed with the sage in question. The uncertainty
of knowing whether he was loved or not, was making a different man of
him. In days that seemed as far removed from the present as if a gulf of
centuries lay between, he had been a happy-go-lucky, easy-going fellow,
taking the world as he found it, and never allowing himself to be much
troubled by anything. Now, however, he had grown preternaturally solemn,
was much given to silent communings with himself, and only brightened
up when he was in the presence of the person who was the object of his
adoration. Naturally this could not continue for long.

"I'll speak to her the very first opportunity I get," he said to
himself; "and if she won't have me, I'll cut the whole show and go
abroad. I could pick up Fensden in Dresden, and we'll go off to Japan
together."

But when he was given a favourable opportunity of speaking, he found he
was unable to bring his courage to the sticking-point, and for the next
day or two he called himself by a variety of names that, had they been
addressed to him by any one else, he would have considered most
objectionable. Regarded dispassionately, in the silent watches of the
night, it seemed a small thing to do. He had only to get her alone, to
take her hand, if he could manage to obtain possession of it, and then
to make his passion known, and ask her to be his wife. Any one could do
that, and he had the best of reasons, when he looked round the circle of
his married acquaintances, for knowing that it had been carried out
successfully on numerous occasions before. Yet when it became necessary
to put it into practice he discovered that it demanded a heroism to
which the charge of the Light Brigade and the storming of the Redan were
as nothing.

"I see that the hounds meet at Churley cross roads on Monday," said his
sister, one morning at breakfast. "Molly wants me to go, but I fear it
will be impossible. I suppose it is not necessary to ask if you will be
there?"

"I suppose I shall," Godfrey replied, as if he had not thought very much
about the matter.

In his heart, however, he knew that it would require an extraordinary
force to keep him away. On Friday he did not go, for the reason that he
had incidentally learned that a certain lady would be in town at her
dressmaker's. The same day he discovered that his old friend and
schoolfellow, James Bradford, to wit, had returned from America, en
route to the Continent, and the inference was that if they did not lunch
together, they would be scarcely likely to meet again for some
considerable time. What, therefore, was more fitting than that he should
catch the 10.18 train at Detwich, and set off for the Metropolis? His
mother and sister said nothing, except to wish him a pleasant journey.
When they were alone together afterward, however, Mrs. Henderson turned
to her daughter.

"Poor boy," she said, "I never thought he would take it as seriously as
he is doing. I have never seen a harder case."

To which her daughter replied somewhat enigmatically:

"I wish I knew what she intends doing."

Despite the eagerness Godfrey had shown to renew his acquaintance with
his friend, Mr. James Bradford, he did not appear to derive such a vast
amount of satisfaction from their meeting as the trouble he had taken to
bring it about would have implied.

"I never saw such a change in a man in my life," said Mr. James Bradford
afterward, when Godfrey had left the club. "He fidgeted about all the
time we were at lunch, and examined his watch at least twice in every
five minutes. Coming into money doesn't appear to agree with him. It's a
pity, for he used to be such a good chap."

On leaving Pall Mall Godfrey took a cab to Bond Street, and for upward
of an hour paced religiously up and down that fashionable thoroughfare.
Then, taking another cab, he drove to Euston, where he spent at least
three-quarters of an hour inspecting the various trains that passed in
and out of the station, pottering about the bookstalls, and glaring at
the travellers who approached him. As every one is aware who lives in
the neighbourhood, there is only one good train in the afternoon that
stops at Detwich, hence his reason for going to the station at that
hour. As the time approached for that train to leave, he grew more and
more nervous, and when the train itself at length backed into the
station to take up its passengers, his anxiety became almost pitiable to
watch. Placing himself near the bookstall, he scrutinized every
passenger who approached him. At last he became aware of two figures,
who were making their way leisurely along the platform in search of an
empty carriage. One was Lady Devereux, tall, gray-haired, and eminently
dignified; her companion there is no need to describe. It struck
Godfrey, as he watched her, that never in his life had he seen so pretty
a face or figure. Nerving himself to carry out the operation he had in
mind, he strolled down the platform, then turning, walked back along the
train, glancing into the various carriages as he passed, until he
reached that in which the two ladies were seated. Then, as if he were
more than surprised at seeing them, he lifted his hat.

"How do you do, Lady Devereux?" he said. "This is an altogether
unexpected meeting!" Then, having saluted the younger lady, he inquired
whether they would permit him to travel down with them.

"Do so, by all means," Lady Devereux replied. "Molly and I have been
obliged to put up with each other's company since the early morning. But
how is it that you are not hunting to-day, Mr. Henderson?"

"An old friend has just returned from America," Godfrey remarked, "and
he invited me to lunch with him. Otherwise I should have been out, of
course."

Whether Miss Molly believed this statement or not I can not say, but I
do not think it probable. One thing was plain; on this particular
occasion she had made up her mind not to be gracious to the poor young
man, and when he endeavoured to draw her into conversation, she answered
him shortly, and then retired into the seclusion of her newspaper.

Why she should have treated him so it is impossible to say, but there
could be no sort of doubt that she was offended at something. In
consequence the poor fellow was about as miserable a specimen of the
human race as could have been found in England that day. When Detwich
was reached, he saw the two ladies to their carriage, and bade them
good-bye. Then, mounting to the box of his own dog-cart, he sent the
horse flying down the street at a pace that, had he not been well known,
would in all probability have secured him an interview with a
magistrate.

"And what sort of journey did you have?" inquired his mother, as she
gave him a cup of tea on his arrival at the house.

"Very pleasant," he answered, though his looks belied his assertion.

"And would you care, as you said the other day, to go back to live in
London?" asked mischievous Miss Kitty.

"I think London is one of the most detestable places on earth," he
replied, stirring his tea as though he were sweeping the Metropolis into
the sea.

"And did you see any one you knew while you were in town?" inquired his
mother.

"A lot of people I don't care a scrap about," he answered.

Feeling that he was not in a fit humour for society, he took himself off
to his studio, where he threw himself into an easy chair, and lit the
largest pipe in his possession. This he smoked as savagely as if it were
responsible for his troubles. By the time the dressing-bell rang, he was
more than ever determined to set off for Japan. So strong, however, was
the chain which bound him, that, on second thoughts, he came to the
conclusion that he would postpone his departure until after the meet at
the Churley cross roads on the following Monday. In consequence he spent
a miserable Saturday, and it was not until he came out of church on
Sunday morning that he was anything like his old self. All through the
service he had been paying a greater amount of attention to a neat
little toque, and the back of a very shapely head, a few seats in front
of him, than was altogether proper in a place of worship. According to
custom, the two families united in the porch.

"Good-morning, Mr. Henderson," said Molly, as they shook hands, and
then, after they had passed outside and the usual commonplaces had been
exchanged, she continued: "What do you think of the state of the
weather?"

There was more in her speech than met the eye. What she really meant
was: "Do you think we shall be able to hunt to-morrow? If so, I am
prepared to be kind to you once more."

Godfrey replied that there had been signs of frost early in the morning,
but he rejoiced to see that they were going off.

"We shall see you to-morrow, I suppose?" she said, as they passed
through the lych-gate out into the high road.

"Of course," he answered. "Provided old Benbow doesn't break his neck in
the meantime, I shall be there."

"I am so glad," she answered, and then, as though she felt that she had
said too much, she devoted her conversation during the rest of the walk
to Kitty, leaving Godfrey to discuss parish affairs with her father.

She had said enough, however, in that short time to transport Godfrey
into the seventh heaven of delight; and I venture to think that if any
one had been foolish enough to suggest a trip to Japan to him at that
moment, it would have been at the peril of his or her life.

I must leave you to imagine with what attention he studied the
appearance of the sky during the next eighteen hours. The barometer in
the hall was tapped with a regularity that was sufficient to
disorganize its internal economy forever and a day. Before he retired to
rest, he took careful stock of the heavens, and was relieved to find
that there was no sign of frost in the air. Next morning he was up
betimes, took his tub with the air of a man from whom great things are
expected, and made a heartier breakfast than he had done for some weeks
past. He looked a handsome figure in pink as his mother was careful to
inform him.

The distance to Churley cross roads from the Hall is little more than a
mile, so that the half-hour he had allowed himself to get there, enabled
him to jog along without hurrying his horse. It was what might be
described as a perfect hunting morning. A slight mist hung in places
upon the fields; it was, however, being quickly dispersed by the
sunshine. A pleasant breeze was driving the clouds across the sky,
throwing delightful shadows upon the meadows, and crisping the surface
of the river as he passed over the old stone bridge. When he reached the
cross roads he had still some ten minutes in hand; but as there were
several others as early as himself, this fact did not weigh heavily upon
his mind. Meanwhile he kept a sharp eye on the road down which he had
come, and when he espied the stout figure of the old baronet on his
famous hunter, with his daughter beside him, mounted on a somewhat
vicious-looking chestnut, he rode forward to receive them.

"A capital day," said the old gentleman, when they had exchanged the
usual salutations. "We could scarcely have a better. Strangely enough,
as I was saying to Molly just now, in fifty years I've never known a wet
Churley Cross Meet."

"What do you think of my new horse, Mr. Henderson?" inquired his
daughter, when the latter had remarked upon the strangeness of the
coincidence. "Papa bought him for me on Saturday."

"He must be very nearly thoroughbred," Godfrey replied, not caring to
add that he did not altogether like the look of the animal in question.
There was a nasty flicker in the horse's eyes, of which, to Godfrey's
thinking, he showed a great deal too much white. There could be no
denying his make and shape, however. "You'll be showing us a clean pair
of heels to-day."

"I'll be bound she will," said the old baronet, upon whom the horse had
evidently made a favourable impression. "They tell me he won a decent
steeplechase last season; and Seth Warton, of whom I got him, says he is
the best he has had in his stable for many a long day. That says
something."

"I sincerely hope he may prove to be all you could wish," said Godfrey;
and at that moment the Master came forward to bid them good-morning.

"I think we'll try the Spinney first, Sir Vivian," he said. "I hear good
reports in that direction. A new horse, Miss Devereux, and I should say
a fast one. Have pity on us all!"

As if to prove that his manners were not so good as his looks, the
animal in question made as if he would rear, and for a moment Godfrey's
heart seemed to stand still.

"I don't like the look of him," he said to himself. "Heaven send he does
her no mischief."

But he was not permitted much time to think of such a thing, for the
Master had given the signal, and already a general move was being made
in the direction of the Spinney. Godfrey settled himself down by Miss
Devereux's side, leaving the old gentleman free to discuss the
prospects of the day with the local doctor, a sportsman of some
celebrity in the neighbourhood.

"Miss Devereux," said Godfrey, as they approached the wood, "at the risk
of offending you, I must say that I don't altogether care about the look
of that horse. I should say, from his appearance, handsome as it is,
that he possesses more than a touch of temper. I do hope you will be
careful what you do with him to-day."

"You needn't be afraid," she answered, as she flashed a sharp glance at
him. "I think we understand each other perfectly. He hasn't been with
hounds for some time, and he's naturally a little excited. It will wear
off, however, before the day is done."

"I sincerely hope it may," Godfrey continued. "In the meantime I can not
help wishing that we could exchange mounts."

"You think that you could manage him better than I?" she said. "If that
is a challenge we will see. Now, let us watch what goes on, for I want
to be well away."

At that moment three blasts of the horn were heard from the right, and,
before Godfrey could have counted twenty, the hounds were out of cover
and streaming away in the direction of the village--only to change
their course after the first quarter of a mile.

"It looks as if we were in for a fast thing," said Miss Devereux; and
the words had scarcely left her lips when the chestnut gave a violent
plunge in the air and was off at a racing pace.

"If he goes on like that, the brute will pull her arms out, if he
doesn't do anything worse," Godfrey muttered to himself.

But so far the girl had got him well in hand. Sitting back in the
saddle, she let him have his head, taking a gradual pull at him as they
neared the first hedge. Whatever his other faults may have been, he was
certainly a jumper, for he cleared the obstacle in unmistakable style.
As she had said a few moments before, there could be no doubt that they
were in for a fast thing. The hounds were racing as if their one desire
was to run Master Reynard to earth before he could get into the next
field. Godfrey's own horse, to use a phrase that his mother could never
understand, "was going strong," but he could not live in the same county
with the chestnut. In spite of Miss Devereux's undoubted skill in the
saddle, the horse was gradually becoming the master. At the third fence,
an ugly-looking post and rail, with a bad approach, he took off too
soon, giving his rider the chance of an extremely nasty fall. She saved
the situation, however, by a miracle. They had reached the top of the
hill, and were descending into the valley on the other side, when
Godfrey, whose horse was doing its best, realized that something very
serious was the matter ahead. The chestnut had undeniably got out of
hand, and, scared by some sheep, was edging toward the left.

"It is just what I expected," he said to himself as he rode along some
half-a-dozen lengths behind the other. "She is losing control over him.
I must follow at all costs."

Digging his spurs into the horse's side, he endeavoured to race up to
the animal in front of him. He was too late, however. The chestnut had
got the bit in his teeth, and, swerving to the left, was galloping in
the direction of a small wood. Observing this, Godfrey turned his
horse's head and made after him. Fortunately, the paddock over which
they were galloping was a large one; but the chestnut was going at such
a pace that he very soon crossed it. Skirting the wood, he began to
descend the hill on the other side. Then he disappeared altogether from
view. When Godfrey reached the top of the rise, he scarcely dared to
look about him; but when he did so, he saw that the horse had altered
his original course, and was making his way again across the angle, as
if he desired to reach the line the hounds were still following. In a
flash Godfrey realized the situation and took in the fact that the
animal was unconsciously making direct for a large chalk pit, and that
unless something were done at once to prevent him, nothing could save
both horse and rider from a terrible death.

"God help me to save her!" he cried. "God help me to save her!"




CHAPTER V


For a moment after he realized the true state of affairs Godfrey was
spellbound with terror. Was it just possible that he would be able to
head the horse off from the pit? If he could not, then it would be the
end of all things as far as Miss Devereux was concerned. With the cold
sweat of terror on his brow he watched the girl he loved racing down the
slope on the maddened horse. He saw that she was making a brave fight to
bring him to a standstill; but even at that distance he could tell that
her effort was in vain. A moment later the animal had once more changed
his course and had dashed toward a hedge. He scarcely rose at it; as a
natural consequence he struck it, toppled over, and then both horse and
rider disappeared together. Fearful at what he might find, Godfrey
galloped toward the spot, jumped the gate that separated it from the
neighbouring field, and looked about him for what he should see. The
horse was lying stretched out upon the ground, and one glance was
sufficient to show him that its neck was broken. In the dry ditch below
the hedge he could catch a glimpse of a black figure. He sprang from his
horse and approached it. Lifting her head he supported her in his arms,
and as he did so a little sigh escaped from her lips.

"God be thanked, she is still alive!" he muttered to himself, and then
he replaced her head upon the bank.

Taking off his coat he made it into a ball. He placed it beneath her
head, and then set off in search of water. When he had procured a little
in his hat he returned and bathed her forehead and temples with it.
After a while she opened her eyes and looked up at him.

"I feel better now," she answered, in reply to his inquiries. "Where is
the horse?"

"Close beside you," he said, and then going to his own animal he took
his flask from the holster and filled the little cup with sherry.

"Drink this," he said. "It will do you good."

The wine revived her, and in a few minutes she was so far recovered as
to be able to sit up and discuss matters with him.

"I am quite well now," she said. "But how am I to get home? Poor papa!
What a state he will be in when he hears! Since my horse is dead I
suppose I must try to walk."

"You will do nothing of the kind," Godfrey replied, firmly. "I will lift
you into the saddle and you must try and ride my horse. If we can find a
village near here, you can remain there until a carriage is sent from
the Court to fetch you."

"As I have proved myself incompetent I suppose I must obey you," she
answered, with a touch of her old spirit. "But what is to be done with
my own poor beast?"

"I will arrange about him when I have attended to your comfort," he
said, and then assisted her to rise and lifted her into the saddle. For
the first hundred yards or so they walked almost in silence. She was the
first to speak.

"Mr. Henderson," she said, looking down at him, "I owe you an apology. I
was rude to you the other day, and I laughed at you when you told me
this morning that you did not like my new horse. Events have proved that
you were right. Will you forgive me?"

"I have nothing to forgive," he answered; "but you can have no idea how
nervous I was this morning when I saw how that brute behaved."

"Why should you have bothered yourself about me?" she asked, not,
however, with quite her usual confidence.

Here was the very opportunity he had been looking for so long. He felt
that he must take possession of it at once.

"Because I love you," he answered. "You must have known that I have been
in love with you ever since I first saw you, Molly. Don't you believe
me?"

"Yes, I know it," she replied, looking at him with the love-light
shining in her own eyes.

"And your answer, Molly? What can you say to me?"

"Only that I love you too," she murmured.

I do not know what my spinster readers will think, but the fact remains
that the paddock they were crossing was a large one, some twenty acres
in extent. It was almost in the centre of this open space that he
proposed to her, and she, brazen creature, at his suggestion, I will
admit, stooped from her saddle and permitted him to kiss her where all
the world might see.

It was between three and four o'clock that afternoon when Godfrey
reached home. He had waited at the little village inn until the
carriage, which he had sent for to convey her home, arrived from the
Court. Then, when he had promised to ride over in the morning in order
to interview her father, he watched her drive off and had afterward
departed himself to his own abode.

"Well, Godfrey, and what sort of a day have you had?" asked Miss Kitty,
as they stood in the drawing-room before the fire.

"Splendid," he answered. "I was awfully cut up at one time, but on the
whole it has been one of the best days in my life."

"You seem to have enjoyed it. Where did you find?"

"At Churley Spinney," he answered.

"And you killed at----?"

"I'm sure I don't know," was the reply.

"How long did you run?"

"I don't know that either."

"You don't seem to have been very observant. What _do_ you know?"

"I only know that I am engaged to Molly Devereux. For the present that
seems to me to be quite sufficient."

In a moment her arms were round his neck.

"You dear boy, I can not tell you how thankful I am."

Nor was Mrs. Henderson's pleasure the less sincere.

To say that Godfrey Henderson was a happy man after his acceptance by
Miss Molly would be too mild an expression altogether. It is my opinion
that for the next few days he could not have been said to be properly
responsible for his actions. He behaved like an amiable lunatic, spent
the greater part of his time, when he was not with his _fiancée_,
planning alterations to a house which was already perfect, and vowed
many times a day that he was not nearly good enough for one so angelic.
Every one, with the exception of Sir George Penistone, perhaps, was
delighted with the match. The worthy old baronet gave his consent
immediately almost before it was asked in point of fact, and vowed that
the two properties would run splendidly together. A county dinner was
given to celebrate the engagement. There were folks who prophesied that
the wedding festivities would be on a scale seldom witnessed even by
Midlandshire, which as all the world knows, or should know, is the most
hospitable county in the three kingdoms. The engagement was to be a very
short one, and the happy couple were to leave directly after the
marriage ceremony for the South of France.

"You are quite sure that you are not anxious to change your mind?" said
Molly to her lover one evening, when they were riding home from hunting.
"Remember, there is still time."

"If it were not so light, and I had not the best of reasons for knowing
that old Farmer Giles is behind us, and has his eyes glued upon our
backs, I would find a means of making you repent of that speech." Then
he added more seriously: "Darling, whatever may happen in the future,
whatever troubles may be in store for us, you will always believe that I
love you, will you not?"

"Always," she answered. "Happen what may, I shall never doubt that. But
what makes you suddenly so solemn?"

"I don't know," he replied. "Somebody walking over my grave, I suppose."

She gave a little cry of pain.

"For pity's sake don't talk like that!" she cried. "You have no idea how
it hurts me."

"In that case I will never do so again," he said. "Forgive me and forget
that I said it, dear." Then to change the conversation, he added: "I
expect this will be our last day's hunting together before we are
married. We shall both be too busy to be able to spare the time."

"I have no idea how I am going to get through all I have to do," she
said. "I shall practically live in shops for the next month, and I do
detest shopping. Mamma, on the other hand, seems to revel in it. I fancy
she would like to have a wedding to arrange every month in the year. By
the way, Godfrey, have you decided who is going to be your best man?"

"Yes," he replied. "Victor Fensden. He is my oldest friend, and I heard
from him only this morning that he will be delighted to officiate in
that capacity. He is in Paris just now, but returns to England at the
end of the week, when I have invited him to come down here for a few
days. I hope you will like him."

"I am certain to like any friend of yours," she replied. "I shall be
very interested in Mr. Fensden. I came across a volume of his poems the
other day. It was very strangely bound and illustrated in an
extraordinary manner by himself."

"That's his own idea. And did you like the poetry?"

"Well, if I must be candid, and I'm sure you won't mind, I must confess
that I did not understand much of it. It seems so confused. Not a bit
like Tennyson, or Keats, or Shelley."

"I quite agree with you," said Godfrey. "Fensden is very clever, too
clever for me, I'm afraid. One or two literary people rave about his
work, I know, but for my part I like less words and a little more human
nature. Give me 'Gunga Din,' or the 'Charge of the Light Brigade,' for
my money, and anybody else can have all the nymphs and satyrs, and odes
to Bacchus and Pan that were ever crammed into the realms of poetry."

Loath as I am to say it, such was the infatuation of this girl that she
positively agreed with him. Fate, with that characteristic kindness for
which it is celebrated, had been good enough to endow them with minds of
similar calibre, which, of course, was very desirable, and just as it
should be.

On the Wednesday morning following the conversation I have just
described Molly and her mother departed for London, where the former
was to be handed over to the tender care of Madame Delamaine and her
assistants. They were to be away for three days, returning home on the
Friday evening, and, as a little compensation for their absence, it was
agreed that Godfrey should meet them in town on the Thursday and take
them to a theatre.

Accordingly the morning train conveyed him to the Metropolis. He had the
pleasure of the vicar's society on the way up, and the latter, not being
restrained by his wife, was able to give him his opinion on matters in
general and the immediate stress on politics in particular. In
consequence, as Godfrey admitted afterward, he spent two such hours of
boredom as he hopes never to experience again. On his arrival in London
he drove to his tailors and ordered his wedding garments, going on
afterward to a well-known firm of jewellers in Regent Street, from whom
he bought a wedding-ring with as much care as he would have given to the
purchase of Crown jewels, and a diamond necklace with little more
concern than if it had been a pair of gloves. From Regent Street he
drove to his club for luncheon. He was late, but that did not matter,
for he felt that the morning had been well spent. On entering the
dining-room he looked about him for a vacant table. He had chosen one,
and was proceeding toward it when a well-known voice behind him said:

"Come and sit here, Godfrey."

He turned round to find himself face to face with no less a person than
Victor Fensden.

"My dear old fellow, this is indeed a surprise," he said as he shook
hands. "I thought you were still in Paris. How long have you been in
London?"

"I crossed this morning," Victor replied. "I am tired of travelling and
want to settle down."

"And you have enjoyed yourself?"

"Fairly well," Victor replied. "I have met a lot of people whom I hope
never to see again, and have tasted, I should say, every example of
villainous cookery in Europe. I am thinking of bringing out a new guide
book, which I shall name 'The Tourist's Vade Mecum'; or, 'Where _not_ to
go in Europe.'"

Considering that it was to Godfrey's generosity that he owed the long
holiday he had been able to take, this was scarcely a grateful speech,
but the latter did not comment on it. He was too happy himself and too
glad to see his friend once more to take offence. He noticed that in his
dress Victor was even more artistic than before. His hair was a shade
longer, his tie a trifle larger (he wore it tied in a bow with ends
flying loose), and the general tone of his costume a little more
pronounced.

"And the future Mrs. Henderson?" he said, airily. "How is she? As you
may suppose, I am all anxiety to make her acquaintance."

"You will do so on Saturday," Godfrey replied, "for I presume you are
coming down to me then?"

"I shall be delighted," said Fensden. "An English country house will be
soothing after the caravansaries I have been domiciled in lately. I
never knew how much I detested my brother Briton until I met him in a
foreign hotel."

The sneer on his face as he said this was not pretty to watch.

"And now that you are at home once more, I presume you will resume your
old habit of searching the slums for foreign eating houses?" said
Godfrey, with a laugh. "Do you remember how and where we met Teresina?"

"Perfectly," Victor replied shortly, and then changed the conversation
by inquiring how long Godfrey intended remaining in town.

"I go back to-morrow morning," was the other's reply. "And now that I
come to think of it, why shouldn't you come down with me? It would be
just the thing for you. We shall be very pleased to see you if you care
to come."

"Impossible," the other answered. "I have such a lot to do. I could not
possibly manage it before Saturday."

"Let it be Saturday then," said Godfrey, with an imperturbable good
humour that contrasted very strongly with the other's peevishness.
"There's a first-rate train which gets you down in time for afternoon
tea. I'll meet you at the station."

When Godfrey had finished his lunch he paid a visit to his saddler and
his bootmaker, and then to fill in the time, inspected the stables of a
well-known horse-dealer. He would have liked to go round to Eaton Square
where Molly and her mother were staying with an old maiden aunt, but he
thought better of it, and contented himself by strolling down Bond
Street on the off-chance that he might meet them. He was not successful,
however, so he returned to his hotel to dress and dine.

At ten minutes to eight he was to be seen standing in the vestibule of
the Lyceum, waiting for the ladies to put in an appearance. When their
carriage drove up he hastened forward to greet them, and conducted them
forthwith to the box he had engaged. Nothing that could tend to their
comfort had been omitted by this extravagant young man, and he found his
reward in the tender little squeeze Molly gave his hand when he removed
her cloak. During the evening he did not concern himself very much with
the play; he watched his future wife's pretty face and the expressions
that played upon it. As soon as they were married he was determined to
paint a life-size portrait of her, which he prophesied to himself would
be the best piece of work he had ever accomplished. But even the
happiest evenings must come to an end, and this particular one was no
exception to the rule. When the curtain fell on the last act, he
re-cloaked his two charges, and escorted them downstairs once more.
Then, bidding them wait in the vestibule, he himself went out in search
of their carriage. When he had placed them in it, he bade them
good-night, and came very near being knocked over by a hansom as he
watched them disappear in the traffic.

The night was bitterly cold, and snow was falling. Reflecting that it
would be wiser not to stand still, he turned up the collar of his coat,
and wondered what he should do next. Should he go back to his hotel and
to bed, or should he stroll on to his club and see who was there? He
eventually decided in favour of the hotel, and accordingly set off along
the Strand in the hope that he might presently be able to pick up a cab.

He had reached Exeter Hall, when, with a cry of astonishment, he found
himself standing face to face with the one person of all others he had
least expected to see in England. It was Teresina!

"Teresina!" he ejaculated, in surprise. "What on earth does this mean?
How long have you been in England?"

"Nearly a month," she answered, looking away as if she desired to avoid
his eyes.

"And why did you not let me know that you were coming?" he asked,
reproachfully. "You must surely remember that you promised to do so?"

"I did not like to trouble you," she replied, still in the same
curiously hard voice. "You were not in London, and I thought you would
be too busy to have time to spare for me."

"You know that is not true," he answered. "I should be a mean brute if I
did not find time to look after my friends. Where are you living? In the
old house?"

She paused for a moment before she replied. He noticed her
embarrassment, but did not put the right construction upon it.

"Near the Tottenham Court Road," she said at last. "I don't think you
would know the street if I told you."

"And your mother, how is she?"

He saw the look of pain which spread over her face, and noticed that her
eyes filled with tears.

"My mother is dead!" she answered, very quietly. "She died in Naples two
months ago."

"And you are alone in the world? My poor child! This will never do. You
must let me help you if I can."

"No, no!" she cried, this time almost fiercely. "I do not require any
help. I can support myself quite well."

"I shall have to be convinced of that before I let you go," he answered.
"London is not the sort of place for a young girl to be alone in,
particularly when one is a foreigner and poor."

"You were always kind to me," she replied, "but I can not let you do
more. Besides you are going to be married. Is that not so?"

"It is quite true," he answered; "but how did you hear of it?"

She looked confused for a moment.

"I can not tell you," she replied. "Perhaps I saw it in the newspapers.
You are famous, and they write about you. Now I must be getting home."

An empty cab happened to pass at that moment, and Godfrey hailed it.

"Get in," he said, when the vehicle had drawn up beside the pavement. "I
am going to see you home. This is not the hour for you to be alone in
the streets."

"No, no," she protested, even more vehemently than before. "I can not
let you do this. I can walk quite well. It is not far, and I have often
done it."

"Teresina, you must do as I tell you," said Godfrey, firmly. "I insist
that you get in and that you give me your address."

She hesitated for a moment before she replied. Then she said:

"No. 16, Burford Street, off the Tottenham Court Road."

Having given the address to the driver, Godfrey took his place beside
the girl. He was thankful, indeed, that he had met her, but the
circumstances under which he had found her distressed him more than he
was able to say. As they drove along he endeavoured to elicit some
information from her concerning her present life. She was not
communicative, however. That there was some mystery at the back of it
all, he could see, and the more he thought of it, the more unhappy he
became. Poor little Teresina! He remembered her as she was when she had
first sat to him for the picture which had made his name; and as he
looked out upon the falling snow and the miserable streets with the dark
figures scurrying along the pavement on either hand, and thought of her
future, his heart sank within him. He wondered whether he could persuade
her to accept a sufficient sum of money from him to enable her to return
to her own country and to live in comfort there? He was rich, and after
all it was not only his duty but his pleasure to help an old friend. As
she seemed so distressed at meeting him, he resolved to say nothing on
the subject then, however; nevertheless, he was determined in his own
mind that he would write to her on the morrow and make the offer,
whether she accepted it or not. At last they came to a part of the
Strand which was more brilliantly illuminated than elsewhere. As they
came within the circle of the light, Teresina put up her hand to push
back her hair, and Godfrey noticed that she wore a wedding-ring upon her
third finger. This gave him food for reflection.

"Teresina," he said, "why did you not tell me that you were married? I
thought you said you were alone in the world."

"My husband is dead," she answered, with what was almost a note of
despair in her voice.

"Your husband dead, and your mother dead too?" he repeated, almost
incredulously. "Teresina, my dear child, are you telling me the truth?"

"Why should you doubt me?" she cried. "You have no reason for doing so."

"Because I feel that you are hiding something from me," he said. "Is it
any use my imploring you to confide in me? You know that I am your
friend, and that I would help you to the best of my ability."

"I know you would," she answered. "You were always a good and kind
friend to me. All I ask of you now, however, is to leave me alone. I am
unhappy enough as it is. Do not seek to add to my misery."

"Heaven knows I have no desire to do that," said Godfrey. "But if you
think I am going to leave you, as you are now, you are much mistaken. If
you would only be brave and tell me everything, it might simplify
matters."

"Impossible," she cried. "Have I not told you there is nothing to tell?
Oh, why did I not go another way home!"

"Because it was to be," he answered. "You were in trouble, Providence
sent me to help you. Believe me, that is the explanation."

A few moments later the cab turned from the Tottenham Court Road into a
narrower and darker street. Half--way down this dingy thoroughfare it
came to a standstill--before a house on the right-hand side. It was by
no means a cheerful dwelling, and at that hour it was wrapped in
complete darkness. They descended from the cab, and Godfrey, who had no
desire that the cabman should overhear his conversation with Teresina,
paid him off with a liberal _largesse_, and allowed him to go on his way
rejoicing.

"Is it any use my again asking you to tell me your trouble?" he said to
the girl beside him, when the vehicle had disappeared and a policeman
had passed, after taking a long survey of them.

"Not in the least," she answered. "Please do not ask me."

"In that case, will you make me a promise, Teresina? If you will do so,
I will ask no further questions for the present."

"What is it I am to promise?"

"That you will not leave this house without first letting me know
whither you are going?"

"I will do that," she answered. "I will let you know when I leave this
house."

"Here is my card then. You had better take care of it. A letter or
telegram will always find me. And now good-night, my poor girl.
Remember, I am your friend."

"Good-night, and may God bless _you_."

So saying, she disappeared into the house, while he, in his turn, after
taking the bearing of the house, in case he should want to find it
again, set off in the opposite direction to that by which he had entered
the street.

Meanwhile Teresina, choking down her sobs, climbed the stairs to the
room she occupied in that ramshackle tenement. Unlocking the door, she
entered and started to cross the floor in search of a box of matches she
remembered having left upon the chimney-piece. She had not advanced more
than three steps, however, before she was seized by the throat from
behind, while at the same time a keen-bladed knife was driven, as far as
the handle, between her shoulders, only to be withdrawn and thrust in
again and again, until she fell with a little gasp upon the floor.

When her assassin had made sure that she was dead, he lit the gas and
knelt beside her for a few minutes. Then he rose, placed something in a
box upon the table, turned off the gas once more, picked up the box, and
went out, relocking the door behind him.




CHAPTER VI


After leaving Teresina, Godfrey made his way back to his hotel. As he
strode along he meditated as to what he should do to help her. That the
girl was in serious trouble, he had not the least doubt; but since she
would not allow him to assist her in any form, what could he do?

He had been through a good deal that day, and by the time he reached his
hotel he was quite worn out. The night porter who admitted him noticed
his haggard appearance.

"You don't look very well, sir," he said, sympathetically; "is there
anything I can do for you?"

"If you could manage to get me a brandy and soda, I should be very much
obliged," Godfrey said, as he dropped into one of the seats in the hall.

"I will do so with pleasure, sir," the man replied, and disappeared at
once in search of the refreshment, which he very soon brought back.
Godfrey drank it off, and then announced his intention of proceeding at
once to bed.

"Poor little Teresina!" he said to himself as he wound up his watch;
"poor little girl, it seems a shame that she should suffer so!"

Little did he guess that at that moment Teresina's troubles were over,
that she would never know sorrow or poverty again.

Next morning he returned to Detwich by an early train. Though he had
only been absent from it a little more than twenty-four hours, it seemed
to him that he had been away for years.

"You look tired out, Godfrey," said his mother, as they stood together
in the hall.

"I did not have a very good night last night," he said, "and I had a
hard day's running about yesterday. That is all. You needn't worry about
me, mother; I'm as strong as a horse."

He went on to tell his mother of his meeting with Fensden, and informed
her that the latter intended coming to stay with them next day.

"That will be very nice," she said. "You will enjoy having him. I shall
put him up in the south wing in order that he may be near you. The
wall-papers are more subdued there. I know, of old, how he notices these
things."

"I don't think he will bother himself very much about wall-papers," said
Godfrey, with a laugh. "He declares that he is so tired of travelling
that the quiet of an English country house will brace him up again."

"I have no doubt it will," said the old lady: "I remember when your
father took me to Paris for our honeymoon, the mere sound of the French
language gave me a headache. I never hear it now without thinking of
that time. And now tell me about Molly. Did she enjoy the play you took
her to see?"

"Immensely," he replied. "She sent her love to you, and bade me tell you
that she would be very pleased to come over to meet Fensden on Saturday.
I only hope that she won't be knocked up by all this shopping."

His mother shook her head.

"I don't think you need have any fear on that score," she said. "When a
girl is about to be married to the man of her heart, the collection of
her _trousseau_ becomes a labour of love. She will make a beautiful
bride, worthy of my boy. I can't say more than that."

"You shouldn't say so much," said Godfrey. "If your boy were to believe
all the compliments you pay him, he would become insufferably conceited.
And now I must go round and see how things have been progressing in my
absence."

The following morning witnessed Molly's arrival at the Hall. It was the
first time she had stayed there since her engagement, and in consequence
she was received with rapturous delight by her lover. Though they had
only been parted for a day, they seemed to have a hundred things to tell
each other. There were, moreover, certain important matters to be
discussed connected with the internal arrangements of the house of which
she was so soon to be mistress. I believe, so infatuated was the young
man that, had she expressed a desire to have the whole fabric pulled
down, and rebuilt in another fashion, he would have set about the work
at once.

"You are quite sure there is nothing else you would like to have done?"
he asked, when they had made the tour of inspection, and were
approaching to the drawing-room once more.

"You have done too much already," she replied, looking affectionately at
her lover. "I very much doubt if ever there was a girl so spoilt as I.
You will have to make up for it by ruling me with a rod of iron
afterward."

"God forbid that I should ever do that," he said seriously. "I hope I
shall always be an indulgent husband to you."

"Not too indulgent," she said. "For my own sake, you must not be. I
don't want to be like a spoilt child."

"You will never be that," he said. "To me you will always be the
most----"

"Hush!" she said, holding up her finger in warning. "I think we must
make it a rule to avoid every sort of compliment. I have had more than
is good for me already."

"I shall find it difficult to obey you, but I will try," he returned.
"And now come with me to the studio; I have one thing left to show you."

"What is that?"

"You must wait and see for yourself," he replied, and led the way
through the conservatory to the room of which he had spoken. They found
the easel covered with a cloth. This he drew aside.

"It is my present to you," he said, referring to the picture he had
revealed, "to be hung in your own room."

"Oh, Godfrey, how good of you! What a splendid likeness!"

It was, in fact, a portrait of himself upon which he had been working
hard ever since his engagement had been announced. He had intended it as
a surprise, and in the pleasure he gave her, he felt that he had been
amply repaid for the labour it had cost him.

"I shall treasure it all my life long," she said, and rewarded him in a
manner that would have turned many folks green with envy.

"And now," she said, when she had gazed her full upon it, "I want you to
show me a photograph of your friend, Mr. Fensden, if you have one.
Remember I have no idea what he is like."

"That can very easily be remedied," he said. "I have a photo which was
taken in Rome, and a small portrait that I painted myself."

So saying, he crossed the room to his writing-table, and, having opened
a drawer, took from it a packet of cabinet photographs. They were, for
the most part, likenesses of old friends, and when he had selected one
of Victor from the number, he placed it before her.

"So that is Mr. Fensden?" she said, seating herself in what he called
his business chair.

For some moments she studied it attentively. Then she replaced it on the
writing-table.

"Well, now that you have seen the portrait, what do you think of him?"
Godfrey asked, as he turned over some canvases on the other side of the
room.

"I scarcely know what to say," she replied, slowly. "It is a refined
face, a clever one, if you like; but, if I may be allowed to say what I
think, there is something in it, I can not tell what, that I do not care
about. I fancy the eyes are set a little too close together." Then she
added more quickly: "I hope I have not offended you, dear. I should not
have spoken so candidly."

"Why shouldn't you?" he inquired. "Perhaps, now you speak of it, the
eyes are a little too close together. But you must wait until you have
seen the man himself before you judge him. I assure you he can be a
charming companion."

"I gathered as much from his photograph," she answered, taking it up and
looking at it again, "At what time does he arrive to-day?"

"In time for afternoon tea," said Godfrey. "I am going to drive in to
meet him."

Molly made a little _moue_; with the selfishness of love, she did not
approve of Godfrey leaving her, if only for so short a time. And, if the
truth be confessed, I fear she was a little jealous of the man who was
to be responsible for his absence. It is not always that a sweetheart is
any too well disposed toward her lover's bachelor friends. For some
reason, Fensden's photograph had prejudiced her against him. She was
resolved to be just; but she felt convinced in her own mind that she
would never be able to say that she really liked or trusted the man. She
did not tell Godfrey this.

In accordance with the arrangements he had made, that afternoon, at
about three o'clock, Godfrey drove off to the station to meet his
friend. He was looking forward to seeing him, if only that he might show
him how great was the difference between the sketch the other had drawn
of his future wife that night in the desert, and the reality. I fancy if
England had been searched through that day, a happier young man than the
master of Detwich would have been difficult to find. Yet, though he
could not guess it, the climax of his life was only a few hours'
distant.

As he drove along, he thought of Molly and the happiness that was to be
his portion in the future. Then his thoughts turned to Teresina. While
he had prospered in the world, she had lost what little happiness she
had ever possessed. He determined to discuss her affairs with Fensden on
the first available opportunity, when doubtless the latter would be able
to suggest a way in which he might assist her. By the time he had
arrived at this reflection, he had reached the station, and the groom
was standing at the horse's head. Having placed the reins under the
patent clip, he descended from the cart and went on to the platform. The
station-master saluted him respectfully, and informed him that the train
had already been signalled. Indeed, the words had scarcely left that
functionary's lips before a whistle was heard in the cutting, and a
moment later it came into view. As the train swept past him Godfrey
caught a glimpse of the man he had come to meet, gathering together his
travelling things, in a first-class carriage.

"How are you, my dear old fellow?" he cried, as he turned the handle of
the door. "You don't know how glad I am to see you! I am afraid you have
had a cold journey. Let me take some of your things."

Victor graciously permitted the other to assist him with his luggage,
and then he himself descended from the carriage. They shook hands and
afterward strolled in the direction of the gate. Victor was attired in a
magnificent travelling ulster, and a neat deer-stalker's hat. An
orange-coloured tie peeped from the opening under his beard, and his
hands were as daintily gloved as a lady's. Altogether, as he walked down
the platform, he presented as artistic a figure as Detwich had seen for
a very long time.

"What have you been doing since I saw you?" Godfrey inquired as they
took their places in the dog-cart.

"Repairing the ravages of time and Continental travel," Victor replied,
somewhat ambiguously. Then he added politely: "I hope Miss Devereux is
well?"

"Very well, indeed," said Godfrey, "and most anxious to see you. She has
read your poems and has seen your portrait; all she requires now is to
be introduced to the original."

"In that case I fear she will be disappointed," said Victor, with what
was almost a sneer in his voice. "Since she is with you, I presume your
mother and sister are at the Hall. Do they look forward to the idea of
turning out?"

"They are a pair of foolish women who would do anything, or give up
anything in order to make me happy," the other replied. "As a matter of
fact, I don't know that they altogether mind. They both prefer London,
and when they return from their travels, I believe it is their intention
to take a flat and settle down somewhere in the neighbourhood of
Kensington."

"While you are assimilating the bucolic virtues. Well, it's a pretty
picture, and if I had fifteen thousand a year and a fine estate I might
be tempted to do the same. As I haven't the money or the property I
remain what I am."

"And that is?"

"A trifler," Victor replied, with unusual bitterness. "One who might
have done and who did not--who dropped the substance in an attempt to
grasp the shadow."

"Nonsense," said Godfrey, who did not like to hear his friend abuse
himself in this fashion. "If you are going to talk like that I shall
have to prescribe a long dose of country air."

Then, in an attempt to change the other's thoughts, he talked of their
travels together, and of the curious characters they had met, which
lasted until they had passed through the lodge gates and were well on
their way across the park. Even in the sombreness of winter the place
looked very beautiful, and Victor expressed himself delighted with it.

"I had no idea it was so fine," he said, as they swept round the drive
and came into view of the house. "I can very well understand your liking
for a country life when you possess an estate like this. Your uncle did
you a kind action when he made you his heir."

"Nobody is more sensible of that fact than I am," Godfrey replied. "I
only wish I could let the old fellow know how grateful I am. I often
think that during his lifetime he was disappointed in me because I took
to painting instead of becoming a country gentleman. I wonder what he
would say if he could see me now? I don't know what you may think, but
to my mind there are times when one likes to imagine that the dead are
near us."

Victor gave a violent start, followed by a shiver.

"Good Heavens! What an idea!" he cried. Then, dropping back into his old
cynical tone, he continued: "I am afraid that if your idea were possible
our human affairs would become somewhat complicated. For my own part I
am quite content that the matter should stand as it is."

As he finished speaking they drew up before the steps and the two men
descended from the cart. The ladies were waiting in the hall to receive
them.

"How do you do, Mr. Fensden?" said Mrs. Henderson, coming forward to
meet him. "It is a long time since we have met, and you have been a
great traveller in the meantime."

"Thanks to your son," said Victor as he took her hand. "How do you do,
Miss Kitty? Events advance too quickly with all of us, but they seem to
have taken giant strides with you."

"You mean that when last we met I was still on the other side of that
line which is only crossed by a girl when she performs the mysterious
operation called 'putting her hair up,'" answered that sharp-tongued
young lady.

"Now, Victor," said Godfrey, when Kitty had been annihilated, "let me
have the pleasure of introducing you to Miss Devereux."

The couple bowed to each other, and Victor offered her his
congratulations.

"And now you must come and have your tea," said Mrs. Henderson,
hospitably. "You must need it, I am sure, after your long journey."

"Or perhaps you would prefer something more substantial," put in
Godfrey. "I noticed that you shivered as we came up the drive."

"I really think I should," said Victor. "After the warmth of the East
our English winters are not to be trifled with."

Godfrey led the way to the dining-room and placed the spirit-stand
before his friend.

"I don't think I have ever been so cold in my life before," said Victor,
as he poured out an amount of brandy for himself that made Godfrey open
his eyes in astonishment, for he had always looked upon the other as an
exceedingly temperate man.

"Now, tell me, would you prefer to see your room first?" Godfrey
inquired, when the other had tossed off his refreshment, "or shall we
join the ladies?"

"Perhaps I had better make myself presentable first," Victor answered,
glancing complacently at himself in the mirror above the chimney-piece.

Godfrey accordingly led the way to the room which had been set apart for
his friend's use, and to which the latter's luggage had been conveyed.
It was a pleasant apartment, looking out on what was called the Ladies'
Garden, and thence across the park to a high and wooded hill. Victor
went to the window and studied the prospect.

"You have a charming home," he said, with what was almost a sigh; "you
are about to marry a beautiful girl; you have wealth, success, and
everything else that can make life worth living, Godfrey. You should be
a happy man."

"I am happy," Godfrey replied, "and, please God, I'll do my best to make
others so. And that reminds me, Victor, I want to have a talk with you.
Do you know that on Thursday night I met Teresina in the Strand?"

Victor had turned from the window, and was brushing his hair at the
time. As he heard what Godfrey said, the brush fell from his hand upon
the floor. As he picked it up and continued his toilet, he said in
surprise:

"Teresina in London? Surely you must have been mistaken. I thought she
was still in Naples?"

"She is in London," Godfrey repeated. "I could not have been mistaken,
for I spoke to her."

"At what time did you see her?"

"Just about midnight," his friend replied.

"Are you aware that the signora is dead and that Teresina is married?"

"How should I be likely to?" said Victor. "You know that I have not seen
her since I bade her good-bye in your studio before we went abroad. And
so the pretty model is married? Well, I suppose the proper thing to say
is that one hopes that she will be happy."

"But she is not happy, far from it. Her husband as well as her mother is
dead."

"I believe there are some wives who would consider that fact to be not
altogether a matter for sorrow. But what makes you think that Teresina
is unhappy?"

"Because she told me so, though she would not tell me anything further.
The poor girl seemed in terrible distress."

"And you gave her money, I suppose?" said Victor. "That is usually the
way one soothes trouble of her kind. I hope she was grateful."

"I wish to goodness you wouldn't be so cynical," said Godfrey, almost
losing his temper. "I wanted to help her, but she would not let me.
Every time I offered my assistance she implored me to leave her. She
broke down altogether when we reached her house."

"Then you took her home?" said the other. "Do you think that was wise?"

"Why should I not have done so?"

"Well, you see," said Victor, putting his brushes back into their case,
"circumstances have somewhat changed with you. Miss Devereux might not
altogether approve."

"Miss Devereux is too good and kind a girl to object to my doing what I
could to comfort an old friend in trouble."

"But when that old friend in trouble happens to be an extremely
beautiful girl the situation becomes slightly changed. However, don't
think that I am endeavouring to interfere. And now shall we go
downstairs?"

"But, confound it, Victor, you don't mean to say that you take no more
interest in Teresina's fate than this? I thought you liked her as much
as I did."

"_Mon cher ami_," said Victor, rearranging his tie before the glass,
"that is scarcely fair, either to yourself or to me. Have you forgotten
a little discussion we had together, and which eventually resulted in
our leaving England for a time? Had you not taken such an interest in
Teresina then, I doubt very much whether I should have seen Cairo or
Jerusalem, or a lot of other places. But still, my dear fellow, if there
is anything I can do to help your old model you may be sure I shall be
only too glad to do it."

"I knew you would," said Godfrey, placing his hand affectionately on the
other's shoulder. "We must talk it over some time and see what can be
done. It will never do to let her go on as she is now."

"You have no idea, I suppose, of the origin of the trouble?"

"Not the least. She would tell me nothing. She tried to make me believe
that she had plenty of work, and that she did not stand in need of any
assistance. I knew better, however."

"And where is she living?"

"In Burford Street, off the Tottenham Court Road. It is a miserable
place, mainly occupied by foreigners. The house is on the right-hand
side."

"Very well," said Victor. "When I go back to town I will look her up. It
will be hard if we can't arrange something."

Then they descended the stairs together and entered the drawing-room.

"My dear Godfrey, are you aware that you will have one wife in a
hundred?" said Kitty, pointing to a table on which some twenty packages
of all sizes, shapes, and descriptions were arranged.

"How so?" said Godfrey. "What new virtue have you discovered in her?"

"I have found that she can subordinate curiosity to a sense of duty,"
said the young lady. "These presents arrived for you just after you left
for the station, and yet she would not open them herself or allow me to
do so until you returned. I have been consumed with a mad desire to
explore them, particularly that foreign-looking box at the end."

"Well, your curiosity shall very soon be satisfied," he said. "But we
must begin with the most important-looking packages."

"Let us pray that there are no more Apostle spoons, serviette-rings, or
silver sweet-dishes," said Molly. "We have already some two dozen of
each."

Package after package was opened in its turn and the contents displayed.
As they were for the most part presents to the bridegroom individually,
they were mainly of a nature suited to his tastes: hunting flasks,
silver sandwich cases, cigar and cigarette holders, and articles of a
similar description. At last they came to the curious-looking box to
which Kitty had referred. It was oblong in shape, and bore the name of a
Vienna firm stamped on the end. It was tied with cord, and the label was
addressed in an uneducated handwriting to "Mr. Godfrey Henderson,
Detwich Hall, Detwich, Midlandshire."

In his own mind he had no doubt that it emanated from Teresina, who, as
he was aware, had been informed as to his approaching marriage. Having
untied the cord, he prized the lid, which was nailed down, with a dagger
paper-knife, which he took from a table close at hand. An unpleasant
odour immediately permeated the room. A folded sheet of newspaper
covered the contents, whatever they were, and this Godfrey removed,
only to spring back with a cry of horror. In the box, _the fingers
tightly interlaced, were two tiny hands_, which had been severed from
the body, to which they had once belonged, at the wrist.




CHAPTER VII


It would be impossible to picture, with any hope of success, the horror
which accompanied the ghastly discovery described at the end of the
previous chapter. Save for the cries of the ladies, who shrank from the
box and covered their faces with their hands, and a muttered ejaculation
from Godfrey, some seconds elapsed before any one spoke. Fensden was the
first to recover his presence of mind. Picking up the sheet of paper
which had fallen to the ground, he covered the box with it, thus
shutting out all sight of the dreadful things it contained.

"Perhaps it would be as well, ladies, if you were to leave the room," he
said. "Godfrey and I must talk this matter over, and consider how we are
to act."

"Come, mother," said Kitty, and she led the old lady in a semi-fainting
condition from the room, closely followed by Molly.

When the door had closed behind them, Godfrey spoke for the first time.

"Good Heavens, Victor!" he said. "What does this mean? Am I mad or
dreaming?"

"I fear it is no dream," replied the other. "Who could have done it? Is
it a case of murder, or what? Did you recognise the--the hands?"

Godfrey crossed to the chimney-piece and covered his face. A suspicion,
so terrible that he dared not put it into words, was fast taking
possession of him.

"Come, come," said Victor, crossing to him, and placing his hands upon
his shoulder, "we must look this matter squarely in the face. Be a man,
and help me. The upshot may be even more serious than we suppose. Once
more I ask you, did you recognise what you saw?"

"I fear so," said Godfrey, very slowly, as if he were trying to force
himself to speak. "There was a little scar, the result of a burn,
half-an-inch or so above the knuckle of the second finger of the right
hand."

He had painted those beautiful hands too often not to remember that
scar. Without a word, he crossed to the table in the middle of the room
upon which the box stood, surrounded by the cases containing the other
wedding presents, and once more removing the lid and the paper,
carefully examined what he saw there. No, God help him! there could be
no sort of doubt about it; the hands were those of Teresina Cardi, his
model and friend. When he had satisfied himself as to their identity, he
closed the box and turned to Fensden once more.

"It is too horrible," he said; "but what does it mean? Why should the
murderer have sent the hands to me in this dreadful way?"

"That is what I have been asking myself," Fensden replied. "The man,
whoever he was, must have borne you a fiendish grudge to have done such
a thing. Is there anything about the box that will afford a clew as to
the identity of the sender? Let us look."

He examined the box carefully, but, beyond the printed name of the firm
who had originally used it, there was nothing that could serve as a
clew. It had come by train from Euston, and had been sent off on the
previous evening. That for the present was all there was to know about
it.

"Once more, what are we to do?" inquired Fensden.

"Communicate with the police," said Godfrey. "In the meantime, I think I
will send a note to my future father-in-law, asking him to come over. I
should like to have his help and support in the matter."

"A very proper course," said his companion. "I don't think you could do
better. I should send a man away at once."

Accordingly Godfrey went to a writing-table in the corner of the room,
and wrote the letter, then rang the bell, and bade the servant who
answered it see that the note was despatched without delay. When the man
had disappeared, he turned to Fensden once more. "And now," he said, "I
think it would be better if we removed the box to the studio."

They did so, by way of the new conservatory, of which mention has been
made elsewhere. Then, in something less than an hour, Godfrey's future
father-in-law arrived. Godfrey received him in his studio, and
introduced Fensden to him as an old friend.

"It is very good of you to come so quickly, Sir Vivian," he said,
motioning him to a chair. "I took the liberty of sending for you because
I want your advice in a very serious matter. How serious it is you will
understand when you have heard what we have to tell you. We have had a
terrible experience, and I am not quite sure that I am capable of
looking at the matter in a temperate light at present."

"You alarm me, my dear boy," said the old gentleman. "What can have
happened? Tell me everything, and let me see if I can help you."

"If I am to do that, I must tell you a story. It will simplify matters,
and it won't take very long. As you are aware, before my uncle's death,
I might have been described as a struggling artist. I was painting my
biggest work at that time, and was most anxious to find a model for the
central figure. I had hunted London over, but without success, when Mr.
Fensden here happened to discover an Italian model whom he thought might
be of use to me. I saw her, and immediately secured her services. In
company with her mother, she had been in England for some little time,
and was glad to accept my offer of employment. When the picture was
finished and hung, I still retained her services, because I liked the
girl and found her useful to me in some other work I had on hand. Then
my uncle died, and I came into the estate. Mr. Fensden and I immediately
agreed to travel, and we accordingly set off together for Egypt and the
East, intending to be away about a year. At the same time, it must be
borne in mind, the girl and her mother had returned to Italy. While we
were at Luxor, I received a letter from her, forwarding me her address
in Naples, in case I might desire to communicate with her concerning
future work. Some three weeks later my mother was taken ill, and I was
telegraphed for to come home at once. I left Port Said in a mail
steamer, intending to take the overland express from Naples to England.
Having some hours to spend in the latter city, I thought there could be
no harm in my discovering the mother and daughter. I did so, we dined
together at a small restaurant, and went on to the Opera afterward."

"You did not tell me that," said Fensden, quickly.

"I did not deem it necessary," said Godfrey. "I should have done so when
we came to discuss the matter at greater length. But to continue my
story. After the Opera I escorted them back to their dwelling, but I did
not enter. On my way to my hotel afterward, I was nearly stabbed by a
lover of my former model, a man, so she had informed me, who was
extremely jealous of any one who spoke to her. Fortunately for me, he
did not succeed in his attempt. I knocked him down, and took his dagger
from him."

As he said this, he took the small poniard, with which the Italian had
attempted his life, from a drawer, and handed it to the old gentleman.

"Next morning I left Naples, to find, on reaching England, that my
mother was decidedly better, and I need not have abandoned my tour. Then
I met your daughter, fell in love with her, and in due course our
engagement was announced. From the moment I said good-bye to her in
Naples, until last Thursday night, I had neither seen nor heard anything
of or from my former model."

"You saw her on Thursday night?" repeated the old gentleman. "In that
case she must have returned to England?"

"Yes," Godfrey replied. "It was after the theatre, and when I had seen
Lady Devereux and Molly to their carriage. I was walking down the Strand
in search of a cab to take me back to my hotel, when I met her. She
recognised me at once, and informed me that her mother was dead, that
she had married, she did not say whom, and that her husband was also
dead. Though she seemed in great distress, for reasons of her own she
would not let me help her. Feeling that she ought not to be in the
streets at such an hour, I took a cab and drove her to her home, which
was a house in a narrow street leading out of the Tottenham Court Road.
I bade her good-bye on the pavement, and having once more vainly
endeavoured to induce her to let me help her, walked back to my hotel."

As he said this, he crossed to the table on which the box had been
placed, and once more removed the lid and paper.

"A number of wedding presents have arrived to-day," he continued, "and
this box came with them. We opened it, and you may see for yourself what
it contained."

Sir Vivian approached the table and looked into the box, only to start
back with an exclamation of horror. His usually rubicund face turned
ashen gray.

"My dear boy, this is more terrible than I supposed!" he gasped. "What
does it mean?"

"I am afraid that it means murder," said Godfrey, very quietly. "My poor
little Italian friend has been brutally murdered, by whom we have yet to
discover. But why these hands of hers should have been sent to me, I can
not for the life of me understand."

"Are you sure they are her hands?"

"Quite sure. There can be no doubt about it. Both Fensden and I
recognised them at once."

"One thing is certain: the man who committed this dreadful deed must
have been jealous of you, and have heard of your kindness to the girl.
Is there any one you suspect?"

"I have it," said Fensden, suddenly, before Godfrey could answer. "The
man in Naples, the lover who tried to assassinate you. He is the man, or
I am much mistaken. We have the best of reasons for knowing that he was
in love with her, and that he would not be likely to stop at murder. If
he would have killed you, why should he not have killed her? You told me
upstairs, when we were speaking of her distress, that the street was
occupied by foreigners; what is more likely, therefore, than that he
should have lived there too? Possibly, and very probably, he was her
husband."

"But she told me her husband was dead," Godfrey asserted.

"She may have had some reason for saying so," Fensden replied. "There
are a hundred theories to account for her words. It is as likely as not
that she did not want you to see him. He is a Neapolitan. For all we
know to the contrary he may be an Anarchist, and in hiding. She might
have been afraid that if you saw him it would lead to his arrest."

"There certainly seems a good deal of probability in Mr. Fensden's
theory," said Sir Vivian; "but the best course for you to adopt appears
clear to me. You must at once communicate with the police and cause
inquiries to be made. I have seen no mention in the papers of a woman's
body having been found under such circumstances. The discovery of a body
so mutilated would have been certain to have attracted a considerable
amount of public attention."

"I think you are right," said Godfrey, after a moment's hesitation. "In
the meantime what are we to do with these poor relics?"

"They must be handed over to the police," said Sir Vivian. "It is only
through them that we can hope to unravel the mystery. If I were you I
should send for the head constable at once and give them into his
charge." Then he added kindly: "I can not tell you how sorry I am,
Godfrey, for your trouble. It must be a terrible blow to you."

"No one can tell what a blow it is, Sir Vivian," said Godfrey in a husky
voice. "A more cruel murder has never stained the annals of crime. The
girl was an honest, kindly creature, and that she should have met her
death in this manner shocks me inexpressibly. If any reward can secure
the arrest of the murderer I will gladly pay it. No effort on my part
shall be wanting to bring him to justice."

"You may be sure that he is a cunning fellow," said Fensden, "and that
his plans were deeply laid. For my own part, if I were you I should
place it in the hands of Scotland Yard and patiently await the result.
You may be quite sure that they will do all in their power, and if they
can not bring about his arrest, nobody else will be able to do so."

"Even if they do not succeed in capturing him I should not abandon the
search," said Godfrey. "Poor little Teresina shall not go unavenged.
There must be several private detectives in London who know their
business almost as well as the officials of Scotland Yard. I will find
the cleverest of them and put them on the trail without delay. If a
promise of a thousand pounds can stimulate him to greater exertions it
shall be paid."

"You will be only throwing your money away," said Fensden. "He will be
paid by the hour, with expenses, and he will fool you with bogus clews
from first to last."

"I must risk that," Godfrey replied.

A message was thereupon despatched to the head of the local
constabulary, who very soon put in an appearance at the Hall. He was a
little man, with a pompous manner and a great idea of his own
importance. It appeared to be his opinion that Detwich was the centre of
civilization, and he the custodian of its peace and safety. On his
arrival he was shown into the studio, where he found the three gentlemen
waiting for him. He saluted Sir Vivian with the deepest servility,
Godfrey respectfully, and Victor Fensden good-naturedly, as if the
latter, not being a landowner in the district, was not entitled to
anything more than a nod.

"We have sent for you, Griffin," said Sir Vivian, "in order to inform
you that a serious crime has been committed, not in this neighbourhood,
but in London."

"A good many serious crimes happen there every day, Sir Vivian,"
remarked the official. "May I ask the nature of this particular one?"

"Nothing short of murder!" Sir Vivian replied; "and as Mr. Henderson
here has been brought into it we have adopted the course of sending for
you at once in order that you may acquaint the proper authorities."

"A very proper proceeding, sir, I have no doubt," said the officer,
diving his hand into his pocket and producing a pencil and an enormous
pocket-book. "I shall be glad, sir, if you will give me the
particulars."

For the third time that afternoon Godfrey told his story, while the
officer made notes. By the time the contents of the box were shown to
him the man's interest was thoroughly aroused. It had always been his
ambition to be mixed up in some big affair, and now his chance had come.
That being so, he was resolved to make the most of it.

"There can be no doubt, sir," he said, addressing Sir Vivian, "that it
is likely to be a very serious matter. So far as I can understand, the
disappearance of the woman has not been noticed, nor has her body been
discovered. I will report the facts of the case to Scotland Yard at
once, and in the meantime I will take possession of this box and its
contents. So far as I can see at present it doesn't look as if it should
be very difficult to lay our hands upon the murderer."

"In that case, I suppose your opinion tallies with ours," said Fensden,
who had just started another cigarette. "You suspect the Neapolitan
lover."

"I do, sir," the man replied with dignity, as if his suspicions were not
things to be treated lightly. "I only wish I had the conducting of this
case throughout. But, there, I suppose it will go elsewhere and others
will get the credit of the job. There is nothing else you wish to see me
about, I suppose, gentlemen?"

"I think not," said Godfrey. "But I should be glad if you would let us
know all that goes on. As I have told you, the poor girl was an old
friend, and her cruel death is naturally a great blow to me."

"I will let you know as soon as I hear anything," the man replied. "I
shall telegraph to Scotland Yard as soon as I get back to the station,
and I expect they will be on the move within the hour. Let me see that I
have got the name and address right, sir. Teresina Cardi, No. 16,
Burford Street, Tottenham Court Road. That is correct, I suppose?"

"Quite correct," said Godfrey. "It is a tall house and there is a
lamp-post exactly opposite the door."

These additional facts having been duly noted, the officer was about to
withdraw, when the butler entered with the evening papers. He handed
them to his master, who made as though he would place them on one side,
as being irrelevant to the matter at issue, when Sir Vivian stopped him.

"One moment," he said. "Before you go, Griffin, let us make sure that
there is no reference in the evening papers to the crime. Will you look,
or shall I?"

In answer Godfrey opened the first paper. It was as well that he did so,
for on the middle page was this announcement in large type:

  TERRIBLE MURDER OF A GIRL!

  REVOLTING DETAILS!

"I thought as much," said the police officer in a tone of bitter
disappointment. "Just my luck again. I was in hopes of being able to put
them on the scent, but it seems that they have found it out without me.
Might I be so bold, sir, as to ask what it says?"

"I will read the account," said Godfrey.

"At an early hour this morning it was reported to the authorities at
Scotland Yard that a murder of an unusual nature had been committed in
the vicinity of the Tottenham Court Road. The victim is an Italian
woman, known as Teresina Cardi, an artist's model, who, it is stated,
has been living in the house in Burford Street, in which her body was
discovered, for upward of a fortnight. It might be mentioned that the
house is let out in flats, the occupants being in the main of foreign
nationality. The girl herself was of a reserved disposition, and did not
associate with the other tenants of the building. She was last seen
alive at seven o'clock on the evening of Thursday, when she was observed
descending the stairs dressed for going out. The hour of her return is
not known, nor was her absence remarked on Friday. Early on Saturday
morning, however, the occupant of a neighbouring room, a German
cabinet-maker, named Otto Grunther, noticed a small stream of dark-red
fluid under the door. His suspicions being aroused, he informed the
owner of the house of what he had seen, who called in the assistance of
the policeman on the beat. Together they ascended to the room in
question to find that the door was securely locked. Their knocks having
elicited no response, a key was obtained and the door opened. On
entering the room it was discovered that the woman was lying dead upon
the floor between the table and the door. Her throat was cut and she
had been stabbed in several places. More horrible still, her hands had
been severed at the wrists and were missing. Though the police are
naturally reticent as to the matter, we are led to believe that they
have not succeeded in finding a clew. Needless to say the revolting
crime has caused a great sensation in the neighbourhood."

"Later News.--Up to the moment of going to press, the most diligent
inquiries have been made by our own representatives as to the identity
of the murdered woman. Teresina Cardi, it would appear, sat as a model
for the central figure in Mr. Godfrey Henderson's famous picture 'A
Woman of the People,' which attracted so much attention in the Royal
Academy Exhibition of last year. She was a Neapolitan by birth, but has
spent a considerable time in this country. It has also come to light
that on the evening in question she returned home shortly after midnight
and was seen talking to a gentleman in evening dress on the pavement in
front of the house.

"The police hope very shortly to be able to discover the identity of
this mysterious individual, when doubtless further light will be thrown
upon the tragedy."

"Good Heavens!" said Godfrey. "They surely don't think that I know
anything more about it than I have said?"

"You must set the matter right without delay," said Sir Vivian. "Does it
say when the inquest will be held?"

"On Monday," Godfrey replied, after he had once more consulted the
paper.

"Then you had better communicate with the coroner at once, telling him
that you are the person referred to, and offering him all the
information it is in your power to give. You owe it to yourself, as well
as the community at large, to do this at once."

"I will do so to-night," Godfrey replied. "In the meantime, Griffin, you
will communicate with Scotland Yard yourself and tell them what we have
discovered. The man who murdered her must have seen us together that
night, and in the madness of his jealousy have sent the evidence of his
crime on to me."

When he had wrapped up the horrible box the police officer took his
departure, leaving the others to discuss the matter and to endeavour to
come to some understanding about it. At last, when there was nothing
further to be said, Godfrey proposed that they should go in search of
the ladies. He had scarcely opened the door of the studio, however, when
there was the sound of a heavy fall. Turning round, he discovered that
Victor Fensden had fallen in a dead faint upon the floor.




CHAPTER VIII


In the previous chapter I described to you how Victor Fensden had fallen
in a dead faint just at the moment when the gentlemen were about to go
in search of the ladies, in order to reassure them after the terrible
shock they had received. Immediately on hearing his friend fall, Godfrey
hurried to his assistance, asking Sir Vivian meanwhile to go in search
of brandy. The latter had scarcely left the room, however, before Victor
opened his eyes.

"My dear old fellow," said Godfrey, "I am indeed thankful to see that
you are better. I knew very well that this terrible business had upset
you more than you were willing to admit. Never mind, it will all be put
right in the end. How do you feel now?"

"Much better," Victor replied. "I can not think what it was that caused
me to make such an idiot of myself."

At this moment Sir Vivian returned with a glass of brandy and water.
Victor sipped a little.

He had not been feeling well of late, he explained, and this shock,
coming on the top of certain other worries, had unmanned him altogether.

"This has been a terrible day," said Godfrey, "and a poor welcome for
you to Detwich. Now, perhaps, you would rather rest a little before
joining the others."

"I think I should prefer to do so," said Victor, and he accordingly
retired to his room, while Sir Vivian and Godfrey went on to explain
matters as best they could to the ladies, who were in the dining-room,
awaiting their return with such patience as they could command.

"My dear boy," said Mrs. Henderson, hastening forward to greet Godfrey
as he entered the room, "you must know how we all feel for you. This has
been a terrible experience. Have you been able to arrive at any
understanding of it?"

"I think I can," said Godfrey, who dreaded another explanation. "It will
be time enough, however, for me to explain later on. It is sufficient at
present to say that a terrible murder has been committed in London, and
that the assassin, knowing that I had endeavoured to be a good friend to
his victim, has played a ghastly practical joke upon me. As you may
suppose, the circumstance has upset me terribly; and when I tell you
that you will make me happier if you will spare me further conversation
upon the subject for the present, I am sure you will do so."

"I think it would be better," said Sir Vivian. "We have placed the
matter in the hands of the police, and I am sure that Griffin will do
all that lies in his power to prevent Godfrey from being unduly worried
by the affair."

Godfrey felt a small hand steal into his.

"I am so sorry for you," whispered Molly.

The touch of her soft warm hand was infinitely soothing to him. It did
him more good than any amount of verbal sympathy.

"But where is Mr. Fensden?" inquired Mrs. Henderson.

"The shock has proved too much for him," Sir Vivian explained. "He
informed Godfrey that he would prefer to go to his room to rest for a
while. I have never met your friend before, Godfrey, but I should say
that he is not very strong."

"I am afraid he is not," the other replied, and the subject dropped.

A quarter of an hour later Sir Vivian announced his intention of
returning home, and when his carriage had come round, took Godfrey on
one side.

"Keep up a stout heart, my boy," he said. "The man who committed the
crime will certainly be captured before very long, and then the poor
girl will be avenged."

Then the kindly old gentleman drove away. When he had seen him depart,
Godfrey went into the house and made his way upstairs to inquire after
Fensden's welfare. Somewhat to his surprise, he found him apparently
quite himself once more.

"I can not think what made me behave in that foolish fashion," said
Victor, as he rose from the sofa on which he had been lying. "I am not
given to fainting fits. Forgive me, old fellow, won't you?"

"There is nothing to forgive," said Godfrey.

As he spoke the dressing gong sounded, and after having asked Fensden
whether he would prefer to come down, or to have his meal sent to him,
and having received an answer to the first in the affirmative, Godfrey
left him, and proceeded along the passage to his own room. When he
reached it he passed to the further end and stood before the original
sketch of his famous picture, "A Woman of the People." It was only a
mere study, roughly worked out; but whatever else it may have been, it
was at least a good likeness of the hapless Teresina.

"And to think that that beautiful face is now cold in death," he said to
himself, "and that the brute who murdered her is still at large. God
grant that it may be in my power to bring him to justice!"

Before he dressed, he sat down at his writing-table and composed a
letter to the coroner, informing him of all he knew of the case, and
promising him that he would be present at the inquest in order to give
any evidence that might be in his power to supply. It was only when he
had finished the letter and sealed it that he felt that he had done a
small portion of his duty toward the dead. He also wrote to his
solicitor giving him an account of the affair, and telling him that he
would call upon him on Monday, prior to the inquest, in order to discuss
the matter with him.

Then he rang for his valet and gave instructions that the letters should
be posted without fail that evening. Then he began to dress with a heart
as heavy as lead. He remembered how much he had been looking forward to
this dinner ever since the idea had first occurred to him. In his own
mind he had endeavoured to picture the first meal that Victor and his
betrothed should take together. He had imagined his friend doing his
best to amuse Molly with his half-cynical, half-burlesque conversation,
with Kitty chiming in at intervals with her sharp rejoinders, while he
and his mother listened in quiet enjoyment of their raillery. How
different the meal was likely to prove!

His dressing completed, he descended to the drawing-room, where he had
the good fortune to find Molly alone. It was plain that she had been
there long enough to read the evening paper, for there was a look of
horror upon her face as she came forward to meet her lover.

"Godfrey, darling," she said, "I see by this paper that a terrible
murder has been committed in the neighbourhood of the Tottenham Court
Road, and that the victim was once your model. I can now understand why
it has affected you so much. Those hands were hers, were they not? I see
also that it says that some one, a gentleman in evening dress, was seen
talking to her about midnight on the pavement outside her house. Do you
think that that man had anything to do with the crime?"

"I am quite sure he had not," Godfrey answered. "For the simple reason
that that man happened to be myself."

"Yourself? You, Godfrey?" she inquired, looking up at him with startled
eyes. "But that was the night on which we were at the theatre together?"

"Yes, dear, the same night," he answered. "Perhaps it would be better if
I were to tell you the whole story."

"Tell me nothing more than you wish," she said. "I am content to trust
you in everything. If I did not, my love would scarcely be worth having,
would it?"

And then he told her of his association with the unhappy woman; told her
of Teresina's sorrow, and of his own desire to assist her. Molly's heart
was touched as she listened.

"You were right," she said, "to try and help her, poor girl! If I had
known, I would have endeavoured to have done something for her for your
sake. Now, unhappily, it is too late. But you must not think too much of
it, Godfrey dear. Try to put it away from you, if only for a time."

At this moment Victor Fensden entered the room. It was plain that he had
recovered his former spirits. He apologized in an easy fashion for his
weakness of the afternoon, and ascribed it to his recent travels, which,
he said, had proved too much for his enfeebled constitution.

"I am not like Godfrey, Miss Devereux," he said. "He seems capable of
bearing any amount of fatigue, plays cricket and football, tennis and
golf, while on a summer's day I sometimes find it impossible even to
lift my head."

It was a sad little party that sat down to dinner that evening. Godfrey
was in the lowest spirits, and Molly was quiet in consequence. Fensden
was accepted, on his own showing, for an invalid, Mrs. Henderson was
naturally of a silent disposition, while Kitty, finding that her efforts
were unappreciated, lapsed into silence after a time, and thus added to
the general gloom. After dinner there were music and polite conversation
in the drawing-room until ten o'clock, followed by a retirement to the
billiard-room for a game at pool. It did not prove a success, however.
No one had any heart for the game, and before the first three lives had
been lost it was voted failure, and the cues were accordingly replaced
in the rack. The memory of two white hands, tightly clinched in despair,
rose continually before every eye, and when, at half-past ten, Mrs.
Henderson proposed that they should retire for the night, every one
accepted the situation with a feeling that was very near akin to relief.

The next day was scarcely better. For the first time since he had been
master of the house Godfrey rose early on a Sunday morning, and, having
ordered his dog-cart, drove into the village. It was scarcely seven
o'clock when he reached the police-station to discover that the head
constable had not yet risen from his bed. He waited in the small office
while the other dressed, finding what consolation he could in a case
above the chimney-piece in which several sets of manacles were
displayed. The constable in charge was plainly overwhelmed by the
squire's presence, and to cover his confusion poked the fire almost
continuously. At last, after what seemed like an hour, Griffin put in an
appearance, and with many apologies invited Godfrey to accompany him to
his own private sanctum where breakfast was being laid.

"It's the first time for many a long day that I have overslept myself,
sir," he hastened to remark; "but I have been so thinking of this 'ere
case that I did not get to sleep until this morning, and I am mortal
sorry, sir, that I should have kept you waiting."

"You have communicated with Scotland Yard, of course?" said Godfrey,
after the other had finished his apology.

"I telegraphed to them last night, sir, and forwarded my written report
at the same time. The post isn't in yet, sir, but I expect I shall get
some instructions when it comes."

He visibly swelled with importance as he made this remark. He felt that
in having the Squire of Detwich for his ally he could scarcely fail to
be noticed, particularly when the most valuable evidence in the case
would be given by the gentleman in question.

Finding that the man had no further news to give him, Godfrey drove
sorrowfully home again, feeling that both his early rising and his visit
to the village were alike of no avail. All through the service in the
little church afterward, despite the fact that Molly worshipped beside
him for the first time, he was ill at ease. Victor had excused himself
from attending the service on the plea of a bad headache, saying he
would go for a walk instead. When they emerged from the sacred edifice
afterward Sir Vivian took his place by Godfrey's side.

"You have heard nothing more, I suppose?" he asked. "Griffin promised to
communicate with you at once on receipt of any intelligence, did he
not?"

"He did," said Godfrey. "But when I saw him at the station this morning
there was nothing to tell. In any case I go up to town to-morrow
morning, when I shall first call upon my own solicitor, to whom I have
already written, and afterward attend the inquest as I have promised.
Fensden says he's coming up, too, in order that any evidence he may have
to give may be accepted."

"One moment, Godfrey," said the old gentleman, stopping him and allowing
the others to go on ahead. "I am going to put a question to you which
may probably offend you. But whether it does or does not, it must be
asked."

"Anything you ask me, sir, you may be sure will not offend me," said
Godfrey. "What is this particular question?"

"I want to know how long you have known your friend?" the old man
inquired. "You see I am going to be perfectly candid with you. You may
think me absurd when I say so, but I have come to the conclusion that
Mr. Fensden does not like you."

"In that case, sir, I am sure you are mistaken," said Godfrey. "Victor
and I were at school together, and we have been companions ever since.
He may be a little cynical in his humour, and inclined to be affected in
his dress and speech, but, believe me, in his inmost heart he is a
thoroughly good fellow."

Sir Vivian was silent for a moment.

"If that is so," he went on, "then I am wrong in my conclusions. I must
confess, however, that I was not favourably impressed with Mr. Fensden
yesterday. I noticed that when he was looking at you and you were not
watching him, there was a curious expression upon his face that was
either one of malice or something very like it. If I were asked my
opinion about this affair I should say that he knew more about it than
you and I put together, and more than he either cares, or is going, to
tell."

"I can not help disagreeing with you, sir," said Godfrey, warming in
defence of his friend. "I happen to know that Victor has not seen
Teresina since the day we left England. It was he who induced me to get
rid of her because he was afraid that she, being a pretty woman, might
possibly induce me to fall in love with her. You see, I am quite candid
with you."

"I am glad that you are," the other rejoined. "Nevertheless obstinacy is
proverbially an old man's failing, and I still adhere to my opinion
concerning the gentleman in question. Whether I am right or wrong time
will prove. In the meantime you say that you go up to town to-morrow
morning."

"Yes, to-morrow morning, first thing," said Godfrey. "We shall leave
Detwich by the 10.18."

"In that case I am going to ask a favour of you," said the other. "Will
you allow me to accompany you? Remember that, as you are going to marry
my daughter, your interests are, and must be, as my own."

"I shall be only too glad if you will come, sir," said Godfrey,
gratefully. "It is a kindness I did not like to ask of you. I am sure it
will make Molly happier to know that you are with me, while it will
prove to the world, if such a proof is needed, that you believe my
interest in this miserable affair to be only what I have stated it to
be."

"We all believe that, Godfrey, of course," Sir Vivian replied. "The man
who thinks otherwise would be insane. And now we turn off here. It is
agreed, therefore, that we meet at the railway station to-morrow morning
and go up to town together?"

"With all my heart, sir," Godfrey replied, and then the kindly old
gentleman turned off with his wife at the path that led across the
fields to the court. When they were out of sight Godfrey informed Molly
of her father's decision.

"With father and Mr. Fensden beside you, the newspapers will not dare to
hint at anything more."

Then for the first time in his life Godfrey felt a vague distrust of
Victor Fensden.

He put the suspicion from him, however, as being not only dishonourable
to his friend, but also to himself.

"I have known Victor for a good many years," he muttered, "and I should
surely be familiar with his character by this time."

Yet, despite his resolve to think no ill of the man, he felt that the
idea was gaining ground with him.

When they reached the house they found Fensden in the drawing-room,
comfortably ensconced in a large chair before a roaring fire. He had
changed his mind, he asserted, and had not gone for a walk after all. He
certainly did not look well. His face was paler than usual, while he was
hollow-eyed, as if from want of sleep. As the party, radiant after their
walk through the sharp air, entered the room, he looked up at them.

"How nice it must be to be so energetic," he said, languidly. "Godfrey
looks disgustingly fit, and more like the ideal country squire than
ever. You should paint your own portrait in that capacity."

This time there was no mistaking the sneer. It may have been the
thoughts that had occupied his brain as he walked home, but even _he_
could not help coming to the conclusion that the man he had known for so
long, whom he had trusted so implicitly, and for whom he had done so
much, was no longer well disposed toward himself. He said nothing,
however, for Victor was not only his guest, but he had troubles enough
of his own just then to look after, without adding to the number. Molly
had noticed it also, and commented on it when she and her lover were
alone together.

"Never mind, dear," said Godfrey. "It doesn't matter very much if he
has taken a dislike to me. I think the truth of the matter is he is not
quite himself. Though he will not show it, I have an idea he is as much
cut up by this terrible business as I am myself. He is very highly
strung, and the shock has doubtless proved too much for his nerves. You
won't see very much more of him, for he will bring his visit to a close
to-morrow morning, as he has decided to go abroad again immediately
after the inquest."

"But I thought he was tired of travelling, and that he had stated his
desire never to see a foreign hotel again?"

"I thought so too, but it appears we were mistaken. However, do not let
us talk about him just now. Can you realize, dearest, that in ten days'
time we are to be married?"

"I am beginning to realize it," she answered. "But this terrible affair
has thrown such a shadow over our happiness for the last twenty-four
hours that I have thought of little else."

"The shadow will soon pass," he answered. "Then we will go to the sunny
South and try to forget all about it."

In his own heart he knew that this was likely to be easier said than
done. Ever since he had seen it on that memorable Thursday night,
Teresina's piteous face had been before him, and now with the
recollection of what had followed so close upon their interview to
deepen the impression, it was more than likely that some time would
elapse before he would be able to forget it.

That night, when he went to bed, he found it difficult to get to sleep.
It was as if the events of the morrow were casting their shadows before,
and when he did sleep he was assailed with the most villainous dreams.
He saw himself in a garret room with Teresina kneeling before him
holding up her hands in piteous entreaty; then he saw her lying dead
upon the floor, her glassy eyes looking up at him as if in mute
reproach. A moment later he was sitting up in bed staring at Victor
Fensden, who was standing beside him, holding a candle in his hand, and
with a look upon his face that showed he was almost beside himself with
terror.

"Good Heavens, man, what is the matter?" cried Godfrey, for the other's
face frightened him. It was as white as paper, while in his eyes there
shone a light that was scarcely that of reason.

"Let me stay with you, let me stay with you!" he cried. "If I am left
alone I don't know what I shall do. I have had such dreams to-night that
I dare not even close my eyes. For God's sake give me brandy! I must
have something to bring back my courage. Look, look! Can't you see, man,
how badly I need it?"

Needless to say, Godfrey saw this. Accordingly bidding him remain where
he was, he went off to procure some. When he returned he found Victor
seated on the settee at the foot of the bed. Apparently he had recovered
his self-command.

"I am afraid you must think me an awful fool, Godfrey," he said. "But I
have really had a deuce of a fright. You don't know what awful dreams I
had. I could not have stayed alone in that room another minute."

It must indeed have been a fright, for Godfrey noticed that, though he
pretended to have recovered, he was still trembling.

"Well, I am glad to see that you are feeling better," he said. "Drink
some of this, it will make a new man of you."

"If it could do that I'd drink a hogshead," he said bitterly. "If
there's one man in this world of whose society I am heartily sick, it is
Victor Fensden. Now I'll go back to my own room. Forgive me for
disturbing you, won't you, but I could not help myself."

So saying, he took up his candle once more and returned to his own room,
leaving Godfrey to put what construction he thought best upon the
incident.

"I am beginning to think that poor Victor is not quite right in his
head," said the latter to himself as he blew out his candle and composed
himself for slumber once more.




CHAPTER IX


The first train that left Detwich for London next morning had for its
passengers Sir Vivian Devereux, Godfrey Henderson, and Victor Fensden.
Inspector Griffin was also travelling by it, not a little elated by the
importance of his errand. On reaching Euston, after promising to meet
them at the inquest, Fensden drove off to his club, while Sir Vivian and
Godfrey made their way to Lincoln's Inn Fields, where they were to have
an interview with Mr. Cornelius Bensleigh, of the firm of Bensleigh and
Bensleigh, solicitors. That gentleman had already received a letter from
Godfrey, written on the Saturday night, giving him an outline of the
affair, and acquainting him of the part the latter had played in the
mystery.

"I am afraid this will be calculated to put you to a considerable amount
of inconvenience, Mr. Henderson," said the lawyer, after they had
discussed the matter for a few moments. "From what I can gather, you
were the last person to see the poor woman alive, and as Sir Vivian
Devereux says, for that reason we must be particularly careful that no
breath of scandal attaches itself to your name. Now, as cases like this
are somewhat foreign to our experience, I have made up my mind, always,
of course, with your permission, that I will introduce you to a
gentleman who makes them his particular study. Of course, should you
desire it, I will put precedent on one side, and do all I can for you;
but, if you will be guided by me, you will place your case in the hands
of Mr. Codey, the gentleman to whom I refer, and whose name is doubtless
familiar to you. His office is not far from here, and if you will
accompany me, I shall be only too pleased to escort you to it, and to
introduce you to him."

This course having been agreed upon, they accompanied him to the office
of the lawyer in question, and, after a few moments' delay, were
conducted to his presence. He looked more like a trainer of racehorses
than a criminal lawyer. He was the possessor of a sharp, keen face, a
pair of restless eyes, a clean-shaven mouth and chin, while the whiskers
on his cheeks were clipped to a nicety. The elderly lawyer introduced
Sir Vivian and Godfrey to him, and explained the nature of their visit.

"Ah, the Burford Street murder," said Mr. Codey, as soon as he heard the
name of the case. "I was wondering how long it would be before I was
drawn into it. And so, Mr. Henderson, you have the misfortune to be
connected with it? As a matter of fact, I suppose you are the gentleman
in evening dress who was seen speaking to the girl on the pavement
outside the house."

"I am; but how do you know it?" Godfrey asked, in considerable surprise.

"I merely guessed it," said the lawyer. "I see from the papers that the
deceased was once your model. Now you come to me for help. I simply put
two and two together, with the result aforesaid. Perhaps you will be
kind enough to tell me all you know about it. Be very sure you keep
nothing back; after that I shall know how to act."

Thus encouraged, Godfrey set to work, and told the tale with which by
this time my readers are so familiar. The lawyer listened patiently,
made a few notes on a sheet of paper as the story progressed, and when
he had finished asked one or two more or less pertinent questions.

"You say that you returned to your hotel immediately after your
interview with the deceased?"

"Immediately," Godfrey answered.

"Did you take a cab?"

"No," said Godfrey; "it was a cold night, and I thought the walk would
do me good."

"But you drove to the house in a cab?"

"I did, and dismissed it at once."

"That was unfortunate. Do you think the driver would know you again?"

"I should think it very probable," said Godfrey.

"You were standing under the lamp-post, of course, when you paid him,
with the light shining full upon your face?"

"I suppose so, as the lamp is exactly opposite the door; but I did not
think of that."

"No; but, you see, I must think of these things," said the lawyer. "And
when you returned to your hotel?"

"I called for a brandy and soda, and, having drunk it, went to bed."

When he had learned all he desired to know, it was arranged that Mr.
Codey should attend the coroner's court, and watch the case on Godfrey's
behalf; after which they left the office. On reaching the club where Sir
Vivian and Godfrey had elected to lunch, they found that the murder was
the one absorbing topic of the day. This was more than Godfrey had
bargained for; for, when it was remembered that the deceased woman had
been his model, he was cross-questioned concerning her on every hand. So
unbearable did this at last become, that he proposed to Sir Vivian that
they should take a stroll in the park until it should be time for them
to set off to the business of the afternoon.

When they reached the building in which the inquest was to be held, they
discovered that a large crowd had collected; indeed, it was only with
difficulty, and after they had explained their errand, that they could
gain admittance to the building. Fensden was awaiting them there, still
looking pale and worried; also Mr. Codey, the lawyer, appearing even
keener than he had done at his office.

"Public curiosity is a strange thing," said the latter, as he looked
round the packed court. "Probably not more than five persons now in this
room ever saw the dead girl, and yet they crowd here as though their
lives depended upon their not losing a word of what is said about her."

At this moment an official came forward, and said something to Godfrey
in a low voice. The latter immediately followed him from the room. When
he returned he was very white, and he seemed visibly upset.

Then the coroner entered, a portly, dignified gentleman, and took his
seat, after which the proceedings were opened in due form.

The landlord of the house, in which the deceased had resided, was the
first witness called. He deposed as to the name she was known by in the
house, stated that she was supposed to be an artist's model, and that,
to the best of his belief, she had been a quiet and respectable girl. At
any rate, her rent had invariably been paid on the day on which it had
become due. He had identified the body as being that of his lodger.
During the time she had been with him he had never known her to receive
a visitor; as a matter of fact, she had kept to herself; scarcely
speaking to any one save when she returned their salutations on the
stairs. He was not aware that she had received a letter, and, as far as
he knew, she had not a friend in London.

The next witness was the German cabinet-maker, who had been the first to
discover the murder. He gave evidence through the medium of an
interpreter, and described how he had seen the congealed blood under
the door and the suspicions it had given rise to. In answer to a
question put by a superintendent of police, who represented the
commissioner, he stated that he had never spoken to the deceased, for
the reason that he knew no English or Italian, and she was not
acquainted with German. He had heard her go out on the night in
question, and return shortly after midnight, but whether she was
accompanied by any one he could not say. He also deposed to the position
of the body when they opened the door, and to the mysterious fact that
the hands were missing.

The next witness was the police-constable on the beat, who had been
called in by the landlord. He gave evidence as to the opening of the
door, and the discovery then made. He was followed by the doctor, who
had made the post-mortem examination, and who described the nature and
situation of the various wounds, and the conclusions he had drawn
therefrom. Then came the first sensation of the afternoon, when the
well-known artist, Godfrey Henderson, was called. In answer to the
various questions put to him, he deposed that he had known the deceased
for upward of a year; that he had employed her for the model of his
picture, "A Woman of the People," and had always found her a quiet and
eminently respectable girl. He had been compelled to dismiss her, not
because he had any fault to find with her, but because he was going
abroad. This was not the last he had heard of her, for, while on the
Nile at Luxor, he had received a letter from her, informing him of her
address, in view of any future work he might have for her. At Naples he
had again met her, when he was on his way back to England, and had taken
her to the Opera in her mother's company. On the night of the murder, he
had again met her in the Strand, quite by accident, when, finding that
she was in serious trouble, he had offered to help her. She would not
accept his assistance, however. Noticing that she was in a most unhappy
state, and not liking to leave her alone in the streets, he had called a
cab and escorted her to her abode in Burford Street. He did not enter
the building, however, but bade her good-bye in the street, after which
he returned to his hotel. He was unable to assign any motive for the
crime, and added that the only person he could have believed would have
committed it, was a man named Dardini, an Italian, who was in love with
the girl, and who had attempted his (the witness's) life in Naples, on
the night of the visit to the Opera. Whether the man was in England he
was unable to say. Whether she had been in want of money at the time of
his last seeing her, he also was unable to say. She had declared that
she was in work, that was all he knew of the matter.

"On hearing that she was married, did you not inquire the name of her
husband?" asked the coroner.

"I did," Godfrey replied, "but she refused to tell me."

"Did not that strike you as being singular?"

"No," Godfrey replied. "When she informed me that he was dead, I did not
press the matter."

"You are quite sure, I suppose, that she was not married when you met
her at Naples?"

"I feel convinced that she was not; but I could not say so on my oath."

"And when you opened the box, which you say was sent you at your country
residence, were you not shocked at the discovery you made?"

"Naturally I was!"

"And what conclusions did you come to?"

"I gathered from it that my old friend had been murdered."

"What caused you to recognise her hands?"

"A certain mark above the knuckle of the second finger, the result, I
should say, of a burn."

At this point, Mr. Codey, who had already informed the coroner that he
was appearing on behalf of the witness then being examined, asked an
important question.

"On making this terrible discovery, what was your immediate action?"

"I sent for my prospective father-in-law, Sir Vivian Devereux, and for
the police officer in charge of Detwich. It was at once agreed that we
should communicate with the authorities and that I should render them
all the assistance in my power."

"Pardon my touching upon such a matter, but I believe you are about to
be married, Mr. Henderson?" said the coroner.

"I hope to be married on Thursday next," said Godfrey.

"I do not think I need trouble you any further," the coroner then
remarked.

The next witness was a police officer, who informed the Court that
inquiries had been made in Naples concerning the man Dardini, with the
result that it was discovered that he had been arrested for assault upon
a foreigner a fortnight before the deceased's return to England, and
that he was still in prison. This effectually disposed of his
association with the crime, and added an even greater air of mystery to
it than before.

When this witness had stepped down, Mr. Victor Fensden was called. He
stated that he was also an artist, and a friend of Mr. Godfrey
Henderson. It was he who had first discovered the deceased, and he had
recommended her to his friend for the picture of which she was afterward
the principal figure. She had always struck him as being a quiet and
respectable girl. When asked why she had received her notice of
dismissal, Victor answered that it was because his friend, Mr.
Henderson, had suddenly made up his mind to travel.

"I understand you to say _suddenly_," said the superintendent in charge
of the case. "Why was it Mr. Henderson suddenly made up his mind to go
abroad?"

"I do not know that this question is at all relevant to the case," said
Victor, appealing to the coroner. "It was purely a private matter on Mr.
Henderson's part."

"But anything that bears on the question at issue can scarcely be
irrelevant," said the coroner. "I think it would be better if you would
answer the question."

Fensden paused for a moment while the Court waited in suspense.

"I repeat my question," said the superintendent. "Why did the deceased
so suddenly lose her employment?"

Once more Victor hesitated. Godfrey looked at him in surprise. Why did
he not go on?

"We decided to travel on account of a conversation Mr. Henderson and I
had concerning the girl."

"What was that conversation?" inquired the coroner.

Once more Fensden seemed to hesitate.

"Did the conversation refer to the deceased?"

"It did!"

"I gather from your reluctance to answer that you were afraid Mr.
Henderson might become attached to her, so you used your friendly
influence in order to hurry him away as quickly as possible? Am I right
in so supposing?"

Another pause, during which Victor's face was seen to express great
emotion.

"That was so."

"You are sure that Mr. Henderson was attached to the deceased?"

"I am sure of it."

"Did you know that Mr. Henderson was aware of the deceased's return to
Naples?"

"I was aware that he was in correspondence with her," said Victor; "but
he said nothing to me of his intention to visit her in Naples."

"Had you known this, would you have endeavoured to dissuade him from
such a course?"

"I do not know what I should have done; but I should think it very
probable that I should have endeavoured to prevent their meeting."

"When did you become aware of the deceased's return to England?"

"When Mr. Henderson informed me of it on my arrival at his house at
Detwich Hall."

"You were naturally very much surprised to hear that he had met her, I
suppose?"

"Very much," Victor replied.

"Did you say anything to him upon the subject?"

"I warned him against the folly of being drawn into another entanglement
with her, particularly when he was to be married in ten days' time."

"You say _another_ entanglement with her? Are we, therefore, to
understand that there had been an entanglement before?"

Again Victor paused before he replied.

"I withdraw the word 'another,'" he said, hurriedly. "I did not mean it
in that sense. I merely suggested to Mr. Henderson that his _fiancée_
might not care to know that he had been seen driving through the streets
of London after midnight with an Italian girl, who had once been his
model."

"Good Heavens!" said Godfrey to himself. "And this is the man whom I
have trusted and who has called himself my friend for so many years!"

At this point the coroner, addressing the jury, stated his intention of
adjourning the inquiry until the following Wednesday morning at eleven
o'clock. He had excellent reasons for keeping it open until then, he
said, and these reasons he had communicated to the foreman of the jury,
who was completely satisfied. The Court thereupon adjourned, and
Godfrey presently found himself in the street with Mr. Codey on one side
and Sir Vivian Devereux on the other. Victor Fensden was waiting for
them on the pavement, and, as soon as they emerged, he approached them
with a face that still bore the traces of violent emotion.

"Godfrey," he began, in a faltering voice, "after what they dragged out
of me, I scarcely know what to say to you."

"In any case, I beg that you will not say it," said Godfrey, coldly.
"You have said quite enough already." Then, turning to the others, he
continued: "Come, gentlemen, let us find a cab. I suppose we had better
go back to your office, Mr. Codey?"

"I think it would be better," said that gentleman. "I must have a talk
with you upon this matter."

Then, hailing a cab, they entered it, leaving Fensden on the pavement
looking after them. Godfrey's face was still very pale. It was
impossible for him to be blind to the fact that his kindness to Teresina
had been the means of bringing down grave suspicion upon himself. Yet,
even with that knowledge before him, he knew that he would not, or
could not, have acted otherwise than he had done.

When they reached the lawyer's private office, the door was shut and
they sat down to business.

"Well, Mr. Henderson," said Mr. Codey, "what is your opinion now?"

"I think that the public mind is already jumping to the conclusion that
I am responsible for the murder," Godfrey answered, without fear or
hesitation.

"I am very much afraid that you must accustom yourself to look upon it
in that light," the other replied. "The man Fensden's evidence, given in
such a manner as he gave it, was unnecessarily damaging."

"He is a black-hearted scoundrel," said the old baronet, wrathfully. "I
told you yesterday, Godfrey, that I didn't trust him, and that I felt
sure he bore you some ill-will. And yet, do you know, Mr. Codey," he
added, turning to the lawyer, "Mr. Henderson has done everything for
that man. He has practically kept him for years past, he took him on a
tour round Europe only a few months ago, and this is the result. It
makes one sick with humanity."

"When you have seen as much of humanity as I have, you will not be
surprised at anything," said the lawyer. "The greater the obligation in
many cases, the deeper the ingratitude. We are wandering from the point,
however. Now I am going to be plain-spoken. Tell me, Mr. Henderson, did
you ever, under any sort of circumstance, make love, or suggest love, to
the woman who is now deceased?"

"Never," said Godfrey, firmly. "The man who declares that I did, lies."

"Very probable, but that won't prevent his saying it. When you left her
in Burford Street, did you meet any one near the house?"

"Not a soul. The street, so far as I could see, was empty."

"I think you said this morning that the night porter let you in at your
hotel? Did you make any remark to him respecting the time?"

"Yes, I said to him when he had opened the door, 'I'm afraid I'm rather
late,' then, looking at my watch, I added, 'Why, it's half-past
twelve!'"

"If he's blessed with a good memory, he will recollect that," said
Codey. Then with his usual abruptness, he continued, "Which way did you
walk from Burford Street?"

"Through the Tottenham Court Road, along Oxford Street, and down Bond
Street."

"A man shall walk it quickly to-morrow morning in order to see how long
it will take. If only that hall porter has a good memory, and can be
relied upon, this should prove an important point."

"But surely, my good sir," put in Sir Vivian, "you do not for a moment
suppose that Mr. Henderson will be accused of having killed this woman?"

"I should not be at all surprised," said the lawyer, quietly. "Let us
regard the facts of the case. Some months back, Mr. Henderson employed
this girl as his model, and retained her services when he really had no
need for them. He was on such familiar terms with her that his friend
felt compelled to remonstrate with him. As a result they left England
hurriedly, the girl following them to Naples. No, no, Mr. Henderson, I
beg that you will be silent. Remember, I am telling the story as I
should tell it if I were against you instead of for you. As I have said,
the girl left for Naples, and I insinuate that she followed you. It can
be proved that she corresponded with you, and that you sent your friend
on his way to travel alone; always bearing in mind that he was the man
who had persuaded you to give the girl up. You, in the meantime,
returned to Naples, in order to visit her again. You may dispute the
motive, but you can not deny that you took her out to dinner and to a
theatre afterward."

"But her mother was with her," said Godfrey hurriedly, his face flushing
angrily at the imputation put upon his action by the other.

"That point is immaterial," the lawyer replied calmly. "It is sufficient
for the purposes of the prosecution that you met her there. Then you
proceeded to England, and, after a little while in the country, became
engaged to the daughter of Sir Vivian, now present. The Italian girl had
also gone to England. Why? To be with you, of course. You, however, see
nothing of her. Therefore, she is unhappy. Why? Because you are about to
be married."

"But that is only supposition," said Godfrey. "As a matter of fact, she
herself was already married."

"To whom? Why not to yourself?"

"Good Heavens, man," said Godfrey, starting from his seat, "you don't
surely mean to say that you believe I had married her?"

"I believe nothing," he replied, still with the same coolness. "But you
will find that the counsel for the prosecution will consider it more
than likely. Let me continue my story. I was saying that she was unhappy
because you were about to be married. It is only natural. Then you came
up to town, visited the theatre, and afterward, quite by chance, met her
in the Strand, at midnight. At midnight, and by chance, mark that! Does
that meeting look like an accidental one? Could you convince a jury that
it was? I doubt it. However, let us proceed. The girl is in trouble, and
you take her home in a hansom. The policeman and the cabman will
certainly identify you, and, for the reason that you say the street was
empty when you bade her good-bye, no one will be able to swear that you
did not go into the house with her. Now, Mr. Henderson, I ask you to
look these facts in the face, and tell me, as a thinking man, whether
you consider the public is to be blamed if it regards you with
suspicion?"

"As you put it, no," said Godfrey. "But it can surely be proved that I
had nothing whatsoever to do with it, beyond what I have said."

"Exactly; and that is what we have got to do. But I don't mind telling
you candidly that I fancy we shall have our work cut out to do it. You
see, we have to remember that, beyond your own evidence, there is
absolutely nothing for us to argue upon. The two strongest points in
your favour are the facts that you were at Detwich when the box
containing the dead woman's hands was sent off at Euston, and that there
would not be sufficient time between the moment when the policeman saw
you in Burford Street and the time when you arrived at your hotel, for
you to have committed the crime. What we have to do is to find the
person who despatched the box from London, and to make sure of the hall
porter. In the meantime go back to Detwich, and be sure that you don't
stir from home until you hear from me."

"One more question, Mr. Codey. I should like you, before we go any
further, to tell me honestly whether, in your own heart, you believe me
to be innocent or guilty?"

"I believe you to be innocent," said the lawyer; "and you may be sure I
shall try to prove it."




CHAPTER X


A more miserable home-coming than Godfrey's, after the events described
in the previous chapter, could scarcely be imagined. They had taken a
cab from the lawyer's office to Euston Station, and during the drive,
neither of them referred in any way to the interview they had just had
with Codey. It was not until they were seated in the railway carriage,
and the train had started upon its journey, that they broke their
silence.

"Sir Vivian," said Godfrey, "I can not express to you my thanks for the
kindness which you showed me in standing by me to-day. Believe me, I am
very sensible of it."

"You must not speak of it;" said the worthy old gentleman; "and as for
the affair itself, it is a piece of ill-luck that might have happened to
the best of us. At the same time, I should very much like to have an
opportunity of telling that wretched Fensden what I think of him."

"Do not let us talk of him," said Godfrey. "His own feelings must be
sufficient punishment for him. There is one thing, however, that I must
say to you before we go any further."

"And what is that?"

"It concerns my wedding," Godfrey replied. "I am afraid it will be a
terrible blow to poor Molly; but until this charge, which I have no
doubt will be brought against me, is disproved, she must not think any
more of me."

Sir Vivian stared at him in astonishment.

"Nonsense, my dear lad," said he. "I know that you love my girl, and
that she loves you. It is her duty, therefore, to stand by you and to
comfort you when you are in trouble. Believe me, she will have no doubt
as to your innocence."

"I know that," said Godfrey; "but I do not think it would be fair for me
to allow her name to be linked with mine under such painful
circumstances."

"It will be linked with it whether you like it or not," was the reply.
"If I am prepared to stake my honour on your innocence, you may be very
sure that she will stake hers. Molly isn't a fair-weather friend."

"She is the truest and best girl in the world," said Godfrey. "No one
knows that better than I."

"Then wait until you have seen her and talked it over with her alone.
Put the question to her, and see what she will say. I know her well
enough to guess what her answer will be."

"God bless you for your trust in me!" said Godfrey, in a shaky voice. "I
fear I have done very little to deserve it."

"It is sufficient that I know you for what you are," the other answered.
"I knew your uncle and grandfather before him, and I am as certain that
you would not do anything dishonourable as I am of my own name. What we
have to do is to put our wits to work and to endeavour to find out, as
Codey says, the sender of the box. Then I believe we shall be on the
track of the real criminal. It was a very good suggestion on Mr.
Bensleigh's part that we should employ that man; we could not have had a
better. I never saw such eyes in my life. He seems to look one through
and through. I pity Mr. Fensden when he comes to be cross-examined by
him."

The old gentleman chuckled over the thought and then lapsed into
silence.

When they reached Detwich, they became aware that Griffin had travelled
from London by the same train. Godfrey beckoned to him.

"Of course you heard the evidence to-day, Griffin," Godfrey began when
the other approached.

"Yes, sir, I did," said the police official, gravely.

"And you must have drawn your own conclusions from it?"

"Yes, sir."

"Well, Griffin, what I wanted to say to you is that, if I am wanted for
anything, I shall not leave the Hall until Wednesday morning; then I
shall go up to the inquiry again."

"I will bear the fact in mind, sir," said the man. "But there's one
thing I should like to say, if you don't mind."

"What is it? Say it by all means."

"It's this, sir. Whether it's going against my duty or not--and there's
nobody here to hear it if it is--whatever verdict they may bring in, I
don't believe for a moment that you had any more to do with that poor
girl's death than I had. You will excuse my saying so, I hope, sir?"

"On the contrary, I am very much obliged to you for your good opinion,"
Godfrey replied, holding out his hand which the other took. "I am afraid
that it's going to be a very unpleasant business for me. That can't be
helped, however. Good-night."

"Good-night, sir," the man answered.

Then Godfrey joined Sir Vivian and, as had been arranged, they drove off
to the Hall together. The moon was rising above the hill as they went
through the park, and as Godfrey looked on the peaceful scene around him
and thought of the terrible suspicion that was growing in people's minds
concerning himself his heart sank within him. If only little Teresina
could speak, how easily she could clear up all the dark charges against
him! She was dead, however, brutally murdered, and he, the only man who
had ever befriended her, was suspected of having caused her death.

"Keep up a stout heart, my lad," said Sir Vivian, as they alighted from
the carriage and ascended the steps. "Think of the ladies, and don't
make them any more unhappy than you can help."

The door was opened by the ancient butler who had served his uncle
before him, and Godfrey entered his home, but how different a man from
the young fellow who had left it that morning!

"The ladies are in the drawing-room, sir," said the servant, when he had
relieved them of their hats and coats.

They accordingly proceeded thither, one of them at least with a sinking
heart.

"We have just been wondering when we should see you," said Kitty.

There was a look of anxiety on Molly's face as she came forward to meet
her lover. She placed her hand in his, and they sat down together.

"Well, my dear boy," said Mrs. Henderson, "what have you to tell us?
What was the result?"

There was no need for her to say to what she referred. Their minds had
been too much occupied with it that day to leave room for any
uncertainty upon the point.

"Nothing is decided yet," said Sir Vivian, who took upon himself the
part of spokesman. "The inquiry is adjourned until Wednesday."

"That means that you will have to go up again," said Molly. "Why
couldn't they settle it at once?"

Godfrey knew, but he dared not tell her the reason.

"They are searching for more evidence, I fancy," said Sir Vivian. "You
must remember that the matter is, at present, shrouded in the greatest
mystery. Until that can be cleared up, nothing can be done."

"And Mr. Fensden, where did you leave him?" asked Mrs. Henderson.

"We parted outside the Court," said Godfrey. "I have no idea where he is
staying to-night."

Though he tried to speak unconcernedly, Molly felt certain in her own
mind that there had been trouble between the two men. She said nothing
to him about it, however. She knew that he would tell her in good time.

That night, when Sir Vivian's carriage was announced, Godfrey
accompanied him to the front door. Before leaving, the old gentleman
took him on one side out of earshot of the servants.

"Keep up your spirits, my dear lad," he said, as he had done so many
times before. "Remember that you have many friends and that I am not the
least of them. Should anything occur, send for me at once, and I will be
with you as fast as horses can bring me. In the meantime do not alarm
the ladies more than you can help."

"You may rely upon my not doing so," said Godfrey, and then Sir Vivian
entered his carriage and drove away.

Later, when Godfrey bade Molly good-night, she looked up at him with
sorrowful eyes.

"I feel sure," she said, "that there is something you are keeping back
from me. I beg of you not to do so. You know how I love you, and how
earnest is my desire to share both your joys and your sorrows with you.
Will you not confide in me and tell me everything?"

"When there is anything worth the hearing, you may be sure I will tell
you, dear," he answered, not daring to let her know the truth that
night. "In the morning we will talk the whole matter over and you shall
give me your advice. And now you must go to bed and try to obtain a good
night's rest, for I am sure you did not sleep well last night."

"I did not," she answered. "I was thinking of you all night, for I knew
how you were dreading going up to-day."

He did not tell her that he dreaded going up on Wednesday a great deal
more. He preferred to take her in his arms and kiss her, calling her his
good angel, swearing that he would love her all his life long, and that
even death itself should not separate them. Then he went to his room,
prepared to spend what he knew would be a sleepless night, and he was
not destined to be wrong. Hour after hour he tumbled and tossed upon his
bed, going over the day's proceedings again and again, and speculating
with never-ceasing anxiety as to what was to happen in the future. At
last, unable to bear it any longer, he rose from his bed and went
downstairs to his studio, where he lighted his fire and smoked and read
until daylight. Then a cold bath somewhat refreshed him, and, as soon as
he had dressed, he set off across the park to the home farm. He was
always an early riser, and his presence there at that hour excited no
comment. He watched the sleek, soft-eyed cows being milked, saw the
handsome cart-horses, of which he had once been so proud, set off upon
their day's work, had a quarter of an hour's conversation with his
head-keeper at his cottage gate, and then returned home through the
plantations to breakfast. It was his mother's habit to read prayers to
the household immediately before the meal, and, as he knelt by Molly's
side, and listened to the old familiar words, his heart ached when he
thought of the misery that any moment might bring upon them.

As the first train from London did not arrive until somewhat late, the
morning papers were delivered with the letters, which usually reached
the Hall about half-past nine. When they arrived Godfrey selected one,
and took it with him to his studio. With a feeling that he had never
before experienced when opening a paper, he turned the crisp pages in
search of the column which he knew he would find. Then he saw in large
type:

  THE BURFORD STREET MURDER

       *       *       *       *       *

  EXTRAORDINARY EVIDENCE

       *       *       *       *       *

There was no need for him to wonder what that evidence was: he knew
before he began to read. The prominence given by the paper to the case
was a proof of the excitement the inquiry had aroused in the public
mind. At last he forced himself to read. Every word rose before his eyes
as vividly as though it had been traced in letters of fire. Set down in
cold print, the affair presented a very sinister aspect, so far as he
was concerned. Every portion of the evidence seemed to point to himself
as being the man who had committed the dastardly deed. He could well
imagine what the feeling of independent persons would be who read it,
and how readily they would arrive at a conclusion unfavourable to
himself. He had just perused it for the second time, when he was
startled by a faint tap upon the door.

"Come in," he cried, and in response Molly entered the room.

"I have been looking for you," she said, with the parody of a smile upon
her face.

"I should have come in search of you in a few moments," he replied. "The
fact is, I have had certain things to do which could not very well be
left undone. Will you forgive me, dear?"

"Of course I will," she answered. "It is impossible for you to be always
with me, and yet I am selfish enough to grudge you the time you spend
upon anything else."

He was quick-witted enough to see that what she said was only an attempt
to gain time. She, on her side, knew that he stood in need of comfort,
and she had come to give it to him.

"Molly," he said, rising from the chair in which he had been sitting and
going toward her, "I feel that I must tell you everything. God knows,
this is the crisis of my life, and to whom should I turn in my sorrow,
if not to the woman I love, and whom I know loves me? Have you read the
account of the inquest in the papers?"

"No," she answered, "I would not read it, lest I should derive a false
impression from it. I am quite willing to hear what you have to say
about it, and to accept your version as the truth."

"God bless you, dear, for your trust in me!" he replied; "but it is
necessary that you should hear what other people have to say upon the
matter. Read it carefully, and, when you have finished, tell me what you
think about it."

He gave her the paper, and for a moment she stood as if undecided.

"Do you really wish it?" she asked.

"It is better that you should do so, believe me," he said. "In that
case, no one can say that I kept anything back from you."

"I will read it," she said, and went toward the window-seat to do so.

While she was reading, he stood before the fire and watched her. He
noticed the poise of the beautiful head, the sweet hands holding the
paper, on one finger of which sparkled the engagement ring he had given
her, and the tiny foot just peeping from beneath the dark green skirt.
She was a woman worth fighting all the world for, and, as he reflected
how easy it would be for false evidence to separate them, he experienced
a fear such as he had never known in his life before.

When she had finished, she crossed the room with the paper in her hand.
Deliberately folding it up and laying it upon the table, she went to
him, and placed her hands in his. Looking up into his face with trustful
eyes, she said:

"I told you yesterday, Godfrey, that I believed in you. I tell you
again, that, whatever the world may say with regard to this dreadful
affair, it will make no difference in my love. I feel as convinced as I
am of anything that, by whatever means, or at whose hand, that poor girl
met her death, you were in no sort of way responsible for, or connected
with it. You believe me, don't you?"

"I do," he answered, with tears in his eyes. "And I thank God for your
trust. Do you know, yesterday I suggested to your father that, situated
as we are, it would be better if I were to give you back your freedom
until my innocence is proved?"

"I would not take it," she answered, firmly. "When I gave myself to you,
it was not to be your bride in fair weather alone; it was to be your
partner in the rough seas of life as well as in the smooth. No, come
what may, Godfrey, I will not let you give me up. Promise me that you
will never mention such a thing again? It hurts me even to think of it."

"Your mind is made up?"

"Quite made up," she answered. "I should not change, even if you were
what--(here she shuddered)--what that paper would seem to suggest. No,
darling, I am your wife, if not in the law, at least in God's sight."

"I thank you," he answered, earnestly. "The knowledge that you still
trust me will be my most precious consolation."

"And now tell me of this Mr. Codey, the lawyer you have employed. Is he
a clever man?"

"One of the cleverest in the land, I should say," Godfrey replied. "He
has had great experience in these sort of cases, and, if any man can
render me assistance, I should say he is that one."

"Oh, how thankful I shall be," she said, "when everything is settled!
How little we dreamt, when we were so happy together last week, that
within a few days we should be made so miserable! Perhaps, after all, it
is only our love being tried in the crucible of trouble. And when it is
over, and we have come out of it, we shall know each other's real worth.
That is the best way to look at it, I think."

"Quite the best," he answered, and kissed her on the forehead.

Then, adopting a brighter tone, he suggested that they should go for a
walk together, in order, if possible, to dispel, for the time being at
least, the dark clouds that had settled upon them. It was a clear,
bright morning, and as they crossed the park, and mounted the hillside
toward the plantation, where the rabbits were playing, and the
pheasants, who of late had not received the attention their merits
deserved, were strutting about on the open grass land, Godfrey found it
difficult to believe that the situation was really as desperate as he
imagined. Their walk lasted for upward of two hours; indeed, it was
nearly lunch-time before they reached the house once more. When they
did, Molly went upstairs to her room to prepare herself for luncheon,
while Godfrey made his way to his mother's sitting room, where he found
the old lady quietly knitting by the fire.

"Thank goodness you have come in at last, dear!" said Mrs. Henderson. "I
have been wanting so much to have a talk with you! Godfrey, I have read
the evidence given at the inquest, and it frightens me."

"I am sorry for that, mother," he said, seating himself by her side.
"What do you think of it?"

She placed her hand upon his arm, and looked at him with her loving
eyes.

"I think my boy is too noble to have done anything of which his mother
would have had reason to be ashamed."

Godfrey rose from his chair and walked to the window. These constant
proofs of the love in which he was held was unmanning him. He could not
trust himself to speak. When his own little world believed in him so
implicitly, how could the greater world be so censorious?

When they went into luncheon, Godfrey soon saw that the ancient butler
and his subordinate had become aware of the state of affairs. Attentive
to his wants as they always were, on this particular occasion, they
were even more so than usual. It was as if they were endeavouring in
their own kindly way to show that they too believed in him, and were
desirous of proving their sympathy with him. Never before had his own
home struck him in the same light. His heart was too full for speech,
and, in spite of his sister's well-meant attempt to promote
conversation, the meal passed almost in silence.

After luncheon the bailiff sent in word that he should like to speak to
him. The man was accordingly admitted to the smoking-room, where he
discussed various matters connected with the estate with his master for
upward of an hour. Labouring as he was, under the weight of greater
emotions, Godfrey found it difficult to pin his attention to the matters
at issue, and when the other went his way, after respectfully touching
his forelock, for the first time since he had known the old fellow, he
heaved a sigh of relief. At half-past four he joined the ladies in the
drawing-room for afternoon tea. To add to his pain, another consignment
of wedding presents had arrived, and in order that he should not be
thought to be unduly nervous about the future, he was compelled to
appear delighted with the attentions he had received from his friends.

"That makes the fifth pair of asparagus tongs we have received," said
Molly, as she closed the case and placed it with its fellows upon the
table. "And what is this? Well, I declare, it's another set of sweet
dishes. That brings the number up to twenty-seven!"

At that moment the sound of carriage wheels outside reached them,
followed, a few seconds later, by the ringing of the front door-bell.

"Visitors, I suppose," said Kitty. "It may be rude, but I must say that
I trust it is not the vicar."

They waited in suspense until Williamson, the butler, entered the room
and informed Godfrey that a gentleman had called to see him, and was
waiting in the library.

"Who is it?" Godfrey asked. "Did he not give his name?"

"His name is Tompkins, sir," the butler replied. "He said he should be
glad if you could spare the time to see him for a few moments."

"I will do so at once," said Godfrey, and, asking the ladies to excuse
him, left the room.

On entering the library, he found himself face to face with a
middle-aged individual, who at first glance resembled a sporting parson.
He was dressed in black, and carried a black silk hat in his hand.

"What can I do for you?" Godfrey inquired. "I am not aware that I have
ever seen you before."

"Very likely not, sir," the man replied. "My name is Tompkins, and I am
a Scotland Yard detective. I hold a warrant for your arrest on a charge
of wilfully murdering Teresina Cardi in Burford Street on the night of
Thursday last. I had better tell you that anything you may say will be
used against you."

The blow had fallen at last!




CHAPTER XI


For some moments Godfrey stood looking at the man who had come down from
town to arrest him, as if he were stunned. Though he had half expected
it, now that the blow had fallen he seemed scarcely able to appreciate
his position. At last, with an effort, he recovered his self-possession.

"You may be able to imagine what a very unhappy mistake this is for me,"
he said to the detective. "But I have no wish to complain to you; you
are only doing your duty. Where is it you desire to take me?"

"We must go up to town to-night," said the man, civilly enough. "As you
may remember, sir, the adjourned inquest is to be held to-morrow
morning, and it will be necessary for you to be present."

"In that case we had better catch the 6.10 train from Detwich. It is an
express and gets to Euston at eight. Is your cab waiting, or shall I
order one of my own carriages to take us?"

"I told the man to wait," the other replied. "He is a station cabman."

"In that case, if you will allow me, I will tell my servant to put up a
few things for me. I suppose I shall be allowed to take them?"

"There is no objection to it."

Godfrey rang the bell, and, when the butler appeared in answer to it,
bade him tell his man that he intended going up to London at once, and
that he wanted his bag prepared without a moment's delay. Then, with a
fine touch of sarcasm, he added: "Tell him also that I shall not require
my dress clothes."

The detective smiled grimly. It was a joke he could appreciate; he also
liked the other's pluck in being able to jest at such a time.

"That's the thing with these swells," he said to himself. "They never
know when they're beaten."

"In the meantime," said Godfrey, "I suppose you will permit me to say
good-bye to my family? I will give you my word, if you deem it
necessary, that I will make no attempt to escape."

"I will trust you, sir," said the man. "I know it's hard lines on you,
and I want to make it as pleasant for you as I can, provided, of
course, you don't get me into hot water."

"I will endeavour not to do that," said Godfrey. "And now I'll go to the
drawing-room. If you think it necessary you can wait in the hall."

"No, sir, thank you. I am quite comfortable here," said the man; "but I
shouldn't make the interview longer than I could help if I were you.
These things are always a bit trying for the ladies. I know it, because
I've seen it so often."

Having ordered a glass of brandy and water for him, the man's favourite
tipple, and handing him an illustrated paper, Godfrey left him and
returned to the drawing-room. He had an agonizing part to play, and he
wanted to spare his women folk as much pain as possible. As he entered
the room they looked up at him with startled faces.

"What is it, Godfrey? What is it?" asked his mother, while the two girls
waited for him to speak.

"It is a man from London who has come down to see me with regard to the
murder," Godfrey began, scarcely knowing how to break the news to them.
"It appears that the authorities are desirous of seeing me prior to the
inquest to-morrow, and so I am going up to-night."

"Godfrey," cried his mother, springing to her feet and running toward
him, "I see it all. They have arrested you on a charge of murder! Oh, my
boy, my boy, I can not let you go! They shall not take you away."

"It is only a matter of form, mother," he said, soothingly. "On the face
of yesterday's evidence, they could do nothing else. All well, I shall
be down again to-morrow. It is only a little temporary inconvenience;
for my lawyer, who is one of the cleverest men of his profession, feels
certain that he can disprove the charge."

"It is monstrous even to suspect you of it," said Kitty. "If they only
knew you, they would not dare even to hint at such a thing."

Molly said nothing. But he knew what her thoughts were.

"I must send a note to your father, dear," he said. "He anticipated this
and made me promise to communicate with him directly it should come to
pass."

He thereupon went to a writing-table in the corner of the room and wrote
a hurried note to Sir Vivian, after which he rang the bell and gave
orders that it should be taken to the Court without a moment's delay.

"Now," he said, when he had examined his watch and found that it was
nearly half-past five, "I must bid you good-bye. Do not be anxious about
me. I am proudly conscious of my own innocence, and I feel sure that, by
this time to-morrow, the public will be aware of it also."

But his mother was not to be comforted. She clung to him with the tears
streaming down her cheeks, as if she could not let him go.

"Mother dear," said Kitty, "you must be brave. Think of Godfrey, and
don't send him away more unhappy than he is."

"I will be brave," she said, and drew his face down to hers and kissed
him. "Good-bye, my dear boy. May God in His mercy bless you and send you
safely back to us!"

When Kitty had kissed him, she drew her mother back into the ingle nook
in order that Godfrey and Molly might say good-bye to each other in
private.

Then Godfrey took Molly in his arms.

"Good-bye, my own dearest," she said. "I shall pray for you continually.
Night and day you will be in my thoughts."

He could not answer her, but kissed her passionately. Then, disengaging
himself from her embrace, he left the room.

Returning to the library, he informed the detective that he was at his
disposal, at the same time telling him that, if they desired to catch
the 6.10 at Detwich, they had no time to lose.

"We had better be going, then," said the man, and leaving the library
they proceeded into the hall. Godfrey's bag had already been placed in
the cab, and the gray-haired old butler, Williamson, was standing at the
foot of the stairs holding the door open.

"Good-bye, Williamson," said Godfrey. "I know that I can safely leave
everything in your hands."

"You can, sir," the man replied, simply; and then for the first time in
his life he allowed himself to become familiar with his master, and
laying his hand on his arm he added, "May God bless you, sir, and send
you back to us soon!"

Then the cab rolled away down the drive, and Godfrey's journey to prison
had commenced.

For the greater part of the drive into Detwich neither of them spoke.
One had too much upon his mind to be in the humour for conversation,
while the other, who was sorry for his prisoner, and who knew a
gentleman when he saw one, had no desire to thrust himself upon him in
his trouble. As it happened when they reached the station they found
that they had some minutes to spare. They accordingly strolled up and
down the platform, while they awaited the coming of the express. On its
arrival they secured an empty compartment, and settled down for the
journey to London. When Euston was reached they took a cab and drove
direct to Bow Street, where Godfrey Henderson, of Detwich Hall, Detwich,
was formally charged with the wilful murder of Teresina Cardi, artist's
model. The usual forms having been complied with, he was placed in a
somewhat superior apartment in another portion of the building. Then the
key was turned upon him, and for the first time in his life was a
prisoner.

Early next morning it was announced that two gentlemen had arrived to
see him. They proved to be Sir Vivian Devereux and Mr. Codey, the
lawyer.

"My dear lad, this is indeed a sad business," said Sir Vivian, as they
shook hands. "I can not tell you how sorry I am for you. But, thank
God, we know you to be innocent and are determined to prove it."

They sat down, and the lawyer, who had been looking round the room,
which doubtless he had seen on many previous occasions, began to ply him
with questions, which Godfrey answered to the best of his ability. When
they had withdrawn, he was left to himself until the time arrived for
him to set off for the coroner's court. When he did so, it was in a cab
with a couple of stout policemen beside him to see that he made no
attempt to escape. On reaching it, he found that it was packed to
overflowing. Victor Fensden was there, seated in the space reserved for
the witnesses, but Sir Vivian noticed that he avoided meeting Godfrey's
eyes. With one exception, the proceedings proved comparatively tame. It
was only when the hall porter referred to Godfrey's haggard appearance
when he returned to the hotel on the Thursday night, that there was
anything approaching excitement. He deposed that Mr. Henderson, who had
been staying at the hotel, and whom he now recognised as being in Court,
returned to the hotel on the night of the murder between a quarter-past
and half-past twelve. He, the porter, was immediately struck by his
strange appearance. In reply to a question put by a juror, he replied
that he looked very much as if he had been upset by something; his face
was deadly white, and he had an anxious, what he should call frightened,
look in his eyes. At the other's request, he had procured him some
brandy, and, as he had had some trouble next morning with the head
waiter about it, the fact was the more vividly impressed upon his
memory. The cabman who had driven them from the Strand to Burford Street
was next called. In answer to questions put to him, he stated that, when
he was hailed by the person now in court, the deceased woman seemed very
reluctant to enter the cab. But the other had at last prevailed upon her
to do so, and he had driven them to the house in the street in question.
He had identified the body, and could swear as to the identity of the
person in court. The police-constable, who had passed a few minutes
before he bade Teresina good-night, was next examined. He remembered
seeing them together, and thought it a strange place for a gentleman to
be in at such a time. His attention was drawn to them because the girl
was crying, while the gentleman seemed somewhat excited. Feeling that,
as he was not appealed to, he had no right to interfere, he passed on
down the street. In answer to the coroner's inquiry, he was unable to
say whether or not the man entered the house.

Ten minutes later a verdict of wilful murder against Godfrey Henderson
was returned, and he was committed for trial on the coroner's warrant.

Instead of returning to Bow Street from the coroner's court, Godfrey was
now driven to Holloway Prison, where he was placed in an ordinary cell.
His spirits by this time had fallen to as low an ebb as it would be
possible for those of a human being to reach. What had he done to
deserve this cruel fate? He was not conscious of ever having done any
one an injury; he had always done his best to help his fellow-men. Why,
therefore, was he brought so low? He thought of Molly, and pictured her
feelings when she should hear that he was committed for trial. He could
imagine his mother's despair and could almost hear poor, sorrowing Kitty
vainly endeavouring to comfort her.

During the afternoon Sir Vivian and Mr. Codey came to see him again. The
former was very plainly distressed; the latter, however, regarded
matters in a somewhat more stoical light. He had seen the same things
so many times before, that he had become in a certain measure hardened
to it. In all the cases upon which he had hitherto been engaged,
however, he had never had one in which the prisoner was a country
gentleman, besides being an artist of considerable repute. "You must not
give way, Mr. Henderson," he said, kindly. "There's plenty of time yet
for us to prove your innocence. Doubtless, when this is all over and you
are free once more, you will regard it as a very unpleasant experience,
certainly, but one which might very easily have been worse. Now, with
your permission, I will tell you what I have done. In the first place,
we must endeavour to find the real murderer. Only a trained hand could
do this, so I have engaged a man with whom I have had a great many
dealings in the past. He is a private detective of an unusual kind, and
has a knack of securing information which neither the Government men nor
the private agents seem to possess. He will be expensive, but I suppose
you will have no objection to paying him well for his services, if he is
successful, as I trust he will be."

"You may be quite sure I shall have no objection," said Godfrey. "Let
him get me out of this scrape, and I'll pay him double, even treble,
his usual charges."

"Oh, he won't bleed you as much as that," returned the lawyer. "He is
below now, and if you care to see him, I will obtain permission for him
to come up."

The necessary authority being forthcoming, Codey presently returned,
accompanied by a burly, rosy-cheeked individual, who might very well
have been the landlord of a well-to-do country inn or a farmer in a
prosperous way of business. A more jovial countenance could scarcely
have been discovered, had one searched England through for it. Merely to
look at it was to be made to feel happy, while to hear his laugh was to
be put in a good humour for the remainder of the day. He was dressed in
a suit of tweeds, more than a trifle pronounced as to colour, a knitted
blue waistcoat covered his portly, bow-windowed presence, while he wore
a spotted blue and white tie, decorated with a large diamond pin. His
feet and hands were enormous, and when he laughed--which he did on every
available opportunity--his whole figure seemed to quiver like a blanc
mange.

"This is Jacob Burrell, Mr. Henderson," said the lawyer, when the door
had closed on them. "I have told him that you wish him to take up your
case, and he is prepared to do so without delay."

"I am exceedingly obliged to you, Mr. Burrell," said Godfrey. "Mr. Codey
has told me of your cleverness. If you can discover who it was who
actually murdered the poor girl, you will not only relieve me from a
position of considerable danger, but you will lay me under an
everlasting obligation to yourself."

"I'll do the best I can, sir," said the man, jovially, rubbing his hands
together, as if he regarded the whole affair as a huge joke. "As Mr.
Codey may have told you, I have unravelled pretty tangled skeins in my
day, and it won't be my fault if I don't do the same here. Now, sir, Mr.
Codey, who knows my ways of work, has given me an outline of the case,
but if you don't mind, I should like to put a few questions to you on my
own account."

"Ask me whatever you please," said Godfrey, "and I will answer to the
best of my ability."

Burrell seated himself opposite Godfrey, placed one enormous hand on
either knee, and looked the other full in the face.

"Now, sir, in the first place, when you had your old studio in London,
before you inherited your present estate, and when you first engaged the
girl, can you remember who were your intimate friends? I mean, the
friends who were in the habit of dropping into your studio pretty
frequently, to smoke their pipes, and perhaps to take a friendly glass?"

Godfrey considered for a moment.

"I had not very many friends in those days," he answered at last. "I was
a hard worker, and for that reason didn't encourage men to waste my
time. Besides, I was only a struggling artist, and couldn't afford to
entertain very much."

"But there must have been some men who came in. Think, sir, and try to
recollect. It's an important point."

"Well, of course, there was my friend, Mr. Fensden, who practically
lived with me. He used my studio whenever he had anything to do."

"He is the gentleman who gave the damaging evidence against you on
Monday, is he not?"

"He is! Then there was a Mr. Bourke, a leader writer on the Daily
Record."

"I know Mr. Bourke," said the detective. "We may dismiss him from the
case at once."

"Then there was an artist named Halliday, who occasionally dropped in,
but he is now in Dresden."

"When did he go?"

"Nearly two months before I went abroad myself," Godfrey answered. "I
think I have given you the list of my friends. I can remember no more."

"Now, sir, that box, in which the hands were sent, had you ever seen it
before?"

"No," said Godfrey; "I am quite certain I had not."

"When you came home from Egypt, did you make any purchases in Naples?"

"None at all. I was only there one night."

"Now, sir, I am given to understand that your friend, Mr. Fensden,
induced you to go abroad for the reason that he feared you were falling
in love with your model. On what sort of terms was Mr. Fensden himself
with the girl in question?"

"On very friendly terms," said Godfrey.

"Was he in love with her, do you think?"

"I am certain he was not," Godfrey replied, shaking his head. "I do not
think he would ever be in love with anybody."

"And you are quite sure that he saw nothing of the girl from the day he
bade her good-bye in your studio, until Monday, when he inspected her
dead body in the mortuary?"

"I am sure of it," Godfrey answered.

"And when did he return to England, for I understand he has been abroad
until lately?"

"On Thursday morning. I met him at the Mahl Stick Club an hour or two
after his return from Paris."

"Now, sir, one other question, and the last. The girl, I understand,
told you that she was married, and refused to say to whom. I have had an
opportunity of examining the wedding-ring from her finger. Somewhat to
my surprise, I found that it was of Austrian make. Now, how does it come
about that a girl living in Naples should be married with an Austrian
wedding-ring? It was, moreover, an expensive one. What I want to know
is, was the young woman ever in Vienna?"

"Never, to the best of my belief," said Godfrey. "At any rate she never
told me so."

"Now, sir, there's one point I want to clear up, and when I have done
that, I sha'n't be at all certain that I haven't got the key to the
whole mystery. Is it only a singular coincidence, do you think, that
Teresina Cardi, your old model, wore a wedding-ring of Austrian make,
and that the box in which her hands were sent to you the other day
should bear the label of a well-known Vienna firm?"

He chuckled and rubbed his hands together, as he put this question to
Godfrey.

"It certainly seems singular," said the latter; "but why should not the
ring have been purchased in Naples, even if it were of Austrian make?"

"There is not the least reason why it should not, but the coincidence is
worth remarking. Now, sir, I shall leave you to think over what I have
said. I shall telegraph to Naples and Vienna, and meanwhile endeavour to
find out who it was handed the box in at Euston. Allow me to wish you
good-day, gentlemen."

They returned his salutations, after which he went away, leaving one
little ray of hope behind him.

"A most remarkable man that!" said Codey, appreciatively, when the door
was once more closed. "He will follow the trail now like a sleuth-hound.
In the meantime, Mr. Henderson, I can not promise you anything very
hopeful for to-morrow. I shall apply to the magistrate for a remand in
order to give Burrell more time to look about him. I shall keep in touch
with him, you may be sure. I have retained Alfred Rolland as counsel for
you. He and I have often worked together, and I don't think you could
have a better man."

"I place myself in your hands unreservedly," said Godfrey. "Do whatever
you think best, and spare no expense. I have others besides myself to
think of in this matter."

"You have indeed, poor souls!" said Sir Vivian. "I shall go down
to-night, and try to reassure them, and come up again first thing in the
morning."

When they left him, half-an-hour later, Godfrey sat himself down on his
bed and resigned himself to his own miserable thoughts. What enemy had
he who hailed from Vienna? He could think of no one among the circle of
his acquaintances who had ever been there. Certainly no one who would be
likely to do him such an irreparable wrong. After that he thought of his
dear ones at home, and broke down completely. His supper was sent away
untouched. He felt as though he could not have swallowed a mouthful,
even had his life depended on it. At last he retired to bed, but not to
rest. When he rose next morning, he felt older by a dozen years.

"This will never do," he said to himself. "If I go on like this, people
will begin to think from my appearance that I am guilty. No, they shall
see that I am not afraid to look any man in the face."

Then the door was unlocked, and he was informed that it was time to set
off for the magistrate's court.




CHAPTER XII


The preliminary investigation before the magistrate calls for but little
comment. The evidence was, with but few exceptions, that which had been
given before the coroner on the Monday and Wednesday preceding. If it
were remarkable for anything it was for the number of spectators in the
Court. The building, in which the coroner's inquiry had been conducted,
had been crowded, but the police-court was packed, not with the
poorly-clad spectators which one usually meets and associates with that
miserable place, but by well-dressed and even aristocratic members of
society. When Godfrey recovered from his first feeling of shame at
finding himself in such a place and in such a position, and looked about
him, he recognised several people whom he had once accounted his
friends, but who had now schemed and contrived by every means in their
power, to obtain permission to watch, what they thought would amount to
his degradation and final extinction. Pulling himself together he gazed
boldly around him, and more than one person there told himself or
herself that a man who could look at one like that could never be guilty
of such a crime as murder. Mr. Rolland, the counsel who had been
retained by Codey for the defence, was a tall, handsome man, and of
others, little above middle-age. He was the possessor of a bland, suave
manner which had the faculty of extracting information from the most
unwilling and reluctant witnesses. Near him sat Mr. Codey himself,
keen-eyed and on the alert for anything that might tend to his client's
advantage. The curiosity of the visitors was not destined, however, to
be gratified, for, when certain of the witnesses had been examined, the
case was adjourned for a week, and Godfrey returned to Holloway by the
way he had come.

How the next seven days passed Godfrey declares he is unable to tell,
but at last that weary week came to an end, and once more he stood in
the crowded Court. At first glance it looked, if such a thing were
possible, as if more people had been squeezed into the building than on
the previous occasion. The fashionable world was as well represented as
before, while this time there were even more ladies present than had
hitherto been the case. The cabman who had driven the pair to Burford
Street was examined and repeated his former evidence. He was subjected
to a severe cross-examination by Mr. Rolland, but his testimony remained
unshaken. The police-constable, who had seen them together outside the
house, also repeated his tale. He was quite certain, he assured the
Court, that the woman in question was crying as he passed them. At the
same time he was not sure whether or not the prisoner was speaking
angrily to her. When he left the witness-box Victor Fensden took his
place. He described the life in the studio before Godfrey left England,
and repeated the story of the attempt he had made to induce him to break
off his relations with the girl. When the prosecution had done with him
Mr. Rolland took him in hand and inquired what reason he had for
supposing that his client had ever felt any affection for the deceased
woman.

"Because he himself told me so," Fensden returned unblushingly. "I
pointed out to him the absurdity of such a thing, and was at last
successful in inducing him to accompany me abroad."

"You parted where?"

"In Port Said. I went on to Palestine, while he returned to Naples."

"_En route_ to England?"

"I believe so."

"On what day did you yourself reach London?"

"On the day of the murder."

"When did you next see the prisoner?"

"He lunched with me at the Mahl Stick Club on the same day."

"That will do," said Mr. Rolland, somewhat to the surprise of the Court.
"I have no further questions to ask you."

It was at this point that the great sensation of the day occurred. When
Fensden had taken his place once more, Detective-sergeant Gunson was
called, and a tall, handsome man, with a short, brown beard entered the
box. He stated that his name was Gunson, and that he was a member of the
Scotland Yard detective force. Two days previous, accompanied by
Detective-sergeant McVickers, he had paid a visit to the prisoner's
residence, Detwich Hall, in the county of Midlandshire. They had made a
systematic search of the building, with the result that, hidden away
behind a bookcase in the studio, they had discovered a long knife of
Oriental workmanship and design. The blade was of razor-like sharpness,
and was covered with certain dark stains. He found nothing else of an
incriminating nature. Detective-sergeant McVickers was next called, who
corroborated his companion's evidence.

Dr. Bensford, an analytical chemist and lecturer at the Waterloo
Hospital, stated that he was instructed by the Home Secretary to make an
examination of the marks upon the knife in question, now produced, and
had arrived at the conclusion that they were the stains of human blood.
(Great sensation in Court.)

So overwhelming was the shock to Godfrey, that for a moment he neither
heard nor saw anything. A ghastly faintness was stealing over him and
the Court swam before his eyes. With a mighty effort, however, he pulled
himself together and once more faced the Court. He looked at Sir Vivian
and saw that the baronet's face had suddenly become very pale.

"Good Heavens!" he thought to himself, "will he suspect me also?"

The analyst having left the box, Victor Fensden was recalled, and the
knife handed to him. He took it in his daintily gloved hand and
examined it carefully.

"Have you ever seen that knife before?" asked the prosecution.

Victor hesitated a moment before he replied.

"No," he answered, as if with an effort.

"Think again," said his examiner. "Remember that this is a court of
justice, and it behooves you to speak the truth. Where did you see that
knife before?"

Once more Victor hesitated. Then in a somewhat louder voice he said:

"In Egypt. In Cairo."

"To whom does it belong?"

"To Mr.--I mean to the prisoner. I was with him when he purchased it."

A greater sensation than ever was produced by this assertion. Godfrey
leaned forward on the rail of the dock and scrutinized the witness
calmly.

"Your Worship," he said, addressing the magistrate, "with all due
respect I should like to be allowed to say that I have never seen that
knife in my life before."

The prosecution having finished their case, Mr. Rolland addressed the
Bench. He pointed out how entirely improbable it was that a gentleman
of Mr. Henderson's character and position would commit a murder of such
a cowardly nature. He commented on the fact that it would have been
impossible, had he even desired to do such a thing, for him to have
committed the crime and have walked from Burford Street to his hotel in
Piccadilly in the time counted from the moment he was seen by the police
officer to the time of his arrival at his hotel. Moreover, he asked the
magistrate to consider the question as to whether a man who had
committed such a dastardly deed would have been likely to send the
mutilated remains to himself as a wedding present. It was useless for
him, however, to argue, the magistrate had already made up his mind, and
Godfrey was therefore not surprised when he found himself committed to
stand for his trial at the next Criminal Sessions, to be held in a
month's time. Bowing to the magistrate, he left the dock, entered the
cab that was waiting for him in the yard, and was driven away to
Holloway.

"It was the finding of that knife that did it," said Mr. Codey
reproachfully, when he next saw him. "Why on earth didn't you tell me
that it was hidden there?"

"Because I did not know it myself," Godfrey replied. "When I told the
magistrate that I had never seen it before, it was the truth. I did not
buy a knife in Cairo, so how could I have brought one home with me?"

"But who could have placed it behind the bookcase, if you did not?"
asked the lawyer.

"That is more than I can say," said Godfrey simply.

"Look here, Mr. Henderson," said Codey sharply, "I have met a good many
unsuspicious men in my time, but I don't think I have ever met one so
unsuspicious as you are. I have a list of all the people in your house
at the moment when that box arrived. Let us run it over. There was your
mother, your sister, and your _fiancée_, Miss Devereux. As our friend
Burrell would say, they may be dismissed from the case without delay.
Your butler and footman are old family servants, as are the housekeeper,
the cook, and the head parlour-maid. They may also be dismissed. The
remainder of the household would be scarcely likely to possess a knife
of that description, so we will dismiss them also. There remains only
yourself and Mr. Fensden. You declare you are innocent, and we will
presume that you are. Now, Mr. Fensden, by his evidence has placed you
where you are. That is certain. You say that he lied as to the fact of
your being in love with the woman who is dead, and also when he said
that you purchased the knife in Cairo. You say that he came to stay with
you on the day that the murder was discovered--why should he not have
placed it behind the bookcase, in order that it should be another
incriminating point against you?"

"I can not believe that he would do such a thing," said Godfrey. "He
would not be so base."

"I am not so sure of it," said the astute lawyer. "What is more, I made
a curious discovery to-day. The man in question pretends to be your
friend. He gives his evidence with reluctance. Yet I noticed that when
that knife was produced his face betrayed neither surprise nor emotion.
Had he had your interests at heart, would he have been so callous?
Answer me that! Now you have my reasons for arguing that he knew where
the knife was, and also the man who had placed it there."

"The suspicions you suggest are too horrible," said Godfrey, rising and
pacing the cell. "What possible reason could he have for doing me such
an injury?"

"One never knows. There are some men who hate the man who is supposed to
be their best friend, either because he, the friend, has been successful
in money-making, in love, or perhaps he presumes him to be happier than
himself. You are rich; he is poor. You have been successful in your
profession; he has been a failure. His hatred, like hundreds, might have
begun with jealousy and have terminated in this. I have known more
unlikely things."

"In that case what am I to do?"

"Leave it to me and to Burrell to arrange. If things were not going
right, my experience teaches me that that astute gentleman would have
shown signs of dissatisfaction before now. He has got his nose on the
trail, you may be sure, and if I know anything about him, he will not
leave it for a moment."

"But do you think he will be able to prove my innocence?" asked Godfrey.

"All in good time, my dear sir, all in good time," said the lawyer.
"With me for your lawyer (pardon the boast), Rolland for your counsel,
Dick Horsden and Braithwaite with him, and Burrell for the ferret that
is to make the rabbits bolt, you could not be better served. For my own
part, I wouldn't mind making you a bet--and as a rule I am not a man
who gambles--that the last-named gentleman has already acquired
sufficient information to secure your return to Detwich with an
unblemished character."

"Then do so by all means," said Godfrey. "I will take it with the
greatest pleasure in the world."

"Very well then," answered the lawyer. "I'll tell you what we'll do.
I've a junior clerk who has the making of a man in him, but who is in
consumption. The doctors tell me that, unless he is sent for a long sea
voyage to the other side of the world, he will not live a year. I have
promised to send him to the South Seas, and, if you like, this shall be
our bet: If you get off scot-free, you pay all his expenses--something
like five hundred pounds--and also give him five hundred pounds to go on
with. If you don't, then I pay. Will you agree to that?"

"With all the pleasure in the world," Godfrey replied.

"Then it's settled. And now I must be going. Good-bye."

They shook hands, and then the lawyer took his departure, leaving
Godfrey happier than he had been for some time past.

The month that separated the magistrate's inquiry from the Sessions at
the Old Bailey seemed to Godfrey like an eternity. Day after day crept
slowly by, with but little, if anything, to relieve the monotony. He
took his daily exercise, kept his cell in spotless order, received
visits from the lawyer, who came to report progress, and from Sir
Vivian, who brought messages of hope and encouragement from the folk at
home.

On one red-letter day he was informed that visitors had arrived to see
him, and he was accordingly conducted to the room where he had on
several occasions interviewed his lawyer. The warder opened the door and
he entered, to be nearly overwhelmed by surprise. Standing by her
father's side, at the farther end of the room, and waiting to receive
him, was no less a person than Molly herself. She ran forward and threw
herself into his arms.

"Molly, Molly," he faltered, "what does this mean? Why are you here? You
should not distress yourself like this."

"I could not help it," she answered. "I had to come, I could stay away
from you no longer. You do not know how I have suffered. It seems as if
a lifetime had elapsed since we parted. At last I managed to persuade
papa to bring me up. My poor boy, how ill you look! How you must have
suffered!"

"Never mind about that, dear," said Godfrey. "If it all comes right in
the end, we can afford to suffer a little. Now tell me of yourself; you
don't know how hungry I am for news."

"No, don't let us talk of myself," she answered. "I want to talk about
you and your affairs. Do you know that this morning I saw Mr. Codey,
your lawyer, for the first time? He was introduced to me by papa."

"And what did he say to you?" Godfrey inquired, with natural interest.

"I am afraid there is not much to tell," said Molly. "When I asked him
if he thought we should be able to prove your innocence, he said,
'That's a thing we shall have to see about; but I don't mind going so
far as to promise you, that, unless there's anything else that I don't
know of, you and Mr. Henderson will eat your Christmas dinner together
next year!' I asked him and implored him to tell me more, but I could
not get anything else out of him."

Godfrey felt his heart beat more hopefully. It was something, indeed, to
know that Codey took such a bright view of the case. Then Molly went on
to give him the latest news of his mother and sister. The old lady, it
appeared, was suffering a great deal on her dear boy's account; but she
firmly believed that in the end he would be acquitted.

"It makes me so sad to see her," said Molly. "As you may suppose, I
spend the greater part of my time there now, and I think we help and
comfort each other."

"God bless you for your goodness to them, dear!" replied Godfrey. "I
know what it must mean to them to have you with them."

"And now, Molly," said Sir Vivian, rising from his chair, "I am afraid
we must go. We were only allowed a short time with you, and we must not
exceed it. Good-bye, my boy, and may God bless you! Don't be
down-hearted; we'll prove your innocence yet."

"You still believe in me, Sir Vivian?" he asked.

"As firmly as ever," the other answered. "I should not be here if I did
not. And now, Molly, you must come along."

Godfrey kissed his sweetheart, and wished her good-bye. When she had
left the room, all the sunshine seemed to have gone out of it, and with
a heavy heart he went back to the gloom of his prison life again.




CHAPTER XIII


Jacob Burrell sat in his comfortable armchair and took counsel with
himself. He was a bachelor, and like many other bachelors was wedded to
a hobby, which in some respects was more to him than any wife could
possibly have been. In other words he was an enthusiastic philatelist,
and his collection of the world's stamps was the envy of every
enthusiast who came in contact with them. For Jacob Burrell they
possessed another interest that was quite apart from their mere
intrinsic value. A very large number of the stamps so carefully pasted
in the book had been collected, or had come into his possession, in the
performance of his professional duties. A very rare 1-1/4 schilling blue
Hamburg was picked up by the merest chance on the same day that he ran a
notorious bank swindler to earth in Berlin; while a certain blue and
brown United States, worth upward of thirty pounds, became his property
during a memorable trip to America in search of a fraudulent trustee,
whose whereabouts the officials of Scotland Yard had not been able to
discover. Well-nigh every page had a story of its own to tell, and when
Burrell was in the humour, he could, with the book before him, reel off
tale after tale, of a description that would be calculated to make the
listener's hair stand on end with astonishment. At the present moment he
was occupied, as he very well knew, with one of the most knotty problems
he had ever tackled in his life. His face wore a puzzled expression. In
his right hand he held a large magnifying glass and in his left a
Canadian stamp of the year 1852. But whether it was the case he was
thinking of or the stamp it would have been difficult to say.

"Genuine or not?" he asked himself. "That's the question. If it's the
first, it's worth five pounds of any man's money. If it's a fudge, then
it's not the first time I've been had, but I'll take very good care
that, so far as the gentleman is concerned who sold it to me, it shall
be the last."

He scrutinized it carefully once more through the glass and then shook
his head. Having done so he replaced the doubtful article in the
envelope whence, he had taken it, slipped the glass back into its
chamois-leather case, tied the tape round the handle as deliberately as
if all his success in life depended on it, put both book and glass away
in a drawer, and then proceeding to the sideboard on the other side of
the room, slowly and carefully mixed himself a glass of grog. It was
close upon midnight and he felt that the work he had that day completed
entitled him to such refreshment.

"Good Heavens," he muttered as he sipped it, "what fools some men can
be!"

What this remark had to do with the stamp in question was not apparent,
but his next soliloquy made his meaning somewhat more intelligible.

"If he had wanted to find himself in the dock and to put the rope round
his neck he couldn't have gone to work better. He must needs stand
talking to the girl in the Strand until she cries, whereupon he calls a
cab and drives home with her, gets out of it and takes up a position in
the full light of a gas lamp, so that the first policeman who passes may
have a look at his face, and recognise him again when the proper time
comes. After that he hurries back to his hotel at such a pace that he
arrives in a sufficiently agitated condition to stand in need of
brandy. Why, it's an almost unbelievable list of absurd coincidences.
However, he didn't commit the crime, that's quite certain. I've had a
bit of experience in my time, and I don't know that I've ever made a
mistake about a human face yet. There's not a trace of guilt in his.
To-morrow morning I'll just run round to the scene of the murder and
begin my investigations there. Though the Pro's have been over the
ground before me, it will be strange if I can not pick up something that
has not been noticed by their observant eyes."

A perpetual feud existed between the famous Jacob Burrell and the
genuine representatives of the profession. His ways were unorthodox, the
latter declared. He did not follow the accustomed routine, and what was
worse, when he managed to obtain information it was almost, if not
quite, impossible to get him to divulge it for their benefit. Such a man
deserved to be set down on every possible opportunity.

True to the arrangement he had made with himself on the previous
evening, Burrell immediately after breakfast next morning set out for
Burford Street. On reaching No. 16 he ascended the steps and entered the
grimy passage, and inquired from a man he found there where the
landlord was to be discovered. In reply the individual he interrogated
went to the head of a flight of stairs that descended like an abyss into
the regions below, and shouted something in German. A few moments later
the proprietor of the establishment made his appearance. He was a small
sallow individual with small bloodshot eyes, suggestive of an undue
partiality for Schnapps, and the sadness of whose face gave one the
impression that he cherished a grievance against the whole world. His
sleeves were rolled up above the elbows, and he carried a knife in one
hand and a potato in the other.

"Vat is dat you vant mit me?" he inquired irritably, as he took stock of
the person before him.

"I want you to show me the room in which that Italian girl, Teresina
Cardi, was murdered," Burrell replied, without wasting time.

The landlord swore a deep oath in German.

"It is always de murder from morning until night," he answered. "I am
sick mit it. Dat murder will be the ruin mit me. Every day der is
somebody come and say 'Where is dot room?' Who are you that you ask me
that I should to you show it?"

Burrell, to the best of his ability, explained his motive for proffering
such a request. This must have been satisfactory, for in the end the
landlord consented to conduct him to the room in question. From the day
of the murder it had been kept locked, and it must be confessed that
since no one would inhabit it, and it did not in consequence return its
owner its accustomed rent, he had some measure of excuse for the
irritation he displayed in connection with it.

"Dere it is," he said, throwing the door open, "and you can look your
full at it. I have scrubbed all dot floor dill my arms ache mit it, but
I can not get der blood marks out. Dot stain is just where she was
found, boor girl!"

The man pointed, with grizly relish, to a dark stain upon the floor, and
then went on to describe the impression the murder and its attendant
incidents had produced upon him. To any other man than Burrell, they
would probably have been uninteresting to a degree. The latter, however,
knowing the importance of little things, allowed him to continue his
chatter. At the same time his quick eyes were taking in the character
of the room, making his own deductions and drawing his own inferences.
At last, when the other had exhausted his powers of description, Burrell
took from his pocket his favourite magnifying glass, cased in its
covering of chamois leather. Having prepared it for business, he went
down on his hands and knees and searched the floor minutely. What he was
looking for, or what he hoped to find, he did not know himself, but a
life's experience had taught him that clews are often picked up in the
most unexpected quarters.

"I've known a man get himself hanged," he had once been heard to remark,
"simply because he neglected to put a stitch to a shirt button and had
afterward to borrow a needle and thread to do it. I remember another who
had the misfortune to receive a sentence of fifteen years for forgery,
who would never have been captured, but for a peculiar blend of tobacco,
which he would persist in smoking after the doctors had told him it was
injurious to his health."

So slow and so careful was his investigation, that the landlord, who
preferred more talkative company, very soon tired of watching him.
Bidding him lock the door and bring the key downstairs with him when he
had finished, he returned to the culinary operations from which he had
been summoned. Burrell, however, still remained upon his knees on the
floor, searching every crack and crevice with that superb and
never-wearying patience that was one of his most remarkable
characteristics. It was quite certain, as the landlord had said, that
the floor had been most thoroughly and conscientiously scrubbed since
the night of the murder. He rose to his feet and brushed his knees.

"Nothing there," he said to himself. "They've destroyed any chance of my
finding anything useful."

Walking to the fireplace he made a most careful examination of the
grate. Like the floor, it had also been rigorously cleaned. Not a
vestige of ash or dust remained in it.

"Polished up to be ready for the newspaper reporters, I suppose," said
Burrell sarcastically to himself. "They couldn't have done it better if
they had wanted to make sure of the murderer not being caught."

After that he strolled to the window and looked out. The room, as has
already been stated elsewhere, was only a garret, and the small window
opened upon a slope of tiled roof. Above the eaves and at the bottom of
the slope just mentioned, was a narrow lead gutter of the usual
description. From the window it was impossible, unless one leaned well
out, to look down into the street below.

"Just let me think for a moment," said Burrell to himself, as he stood
looking at the roofs of the houses opposite; "the night of the murder
was a warm one, and this window would almost certainly be open. I
suppose if the people in the houses on the other side of the way had
seen or heard anything, they would have been sure to come forward before
now. The idea, however, is always worth trying. I've a good mind to make
a few inquiries over there later on."

As he said this he gave a little start forward, and leaning out of the
window, looked down over the tiles into the gutter below. A small
fragment of a well-smoked cigarette could just be descried in it.

"My luck again," he said with a chuckle. "If some reporter or sensation
hunter didn't throw it there, which is scarcely likely, I may be on the
right track after all. Now who could have been smoking cigarettes up
here? First and foremost I'll have a look at it."

On entering, he had placed his walking stick on the table in the middle
of the room. He turned to get it, and as he did so he took from his
pocket a small housewife. His multitudinous experiences had taught him
the advisability of carrying such an article about with him, and on this
occasion it promised to prove more than ordinarily useful. From one
compartment he selected a long, stout needle which he placed in a hole
in the handle of the walking stick. Then returning once more to the
window, and leaning well out, he probed for the cigarette lying so
snugly five or six feet below him. Twice he was unsuccessful, but the
third attempt brought the precious relic to his hand. Taking it to the
table, he drew up a chair and sat down to examine it. It was sodden and
discoloured, but the rim of the gutter had in a measure protected it,
and it still held together. His famous magnifying glass was again
brought into action. Once upon a time there had been printing on the
paper, but now it was well-nigh undecipherable. As I have already
remarked, however, Burrell was a man gifted with rare patience, and
after a scrutiny that lasted some minutes, he was able to make out
sufficient of the printing to know that the maker's name ended with
"olous," while the place in which the cigarette had been manufactured
was _Cairo_.

"I wonder," said the detective to himself, "if this is destined to be of
any service to me. At first glance it would appear as if my first
impression was a wrong one. Mr. Henderson, who is accused of the murder,
has lately returned from Cairo. Though, perhaps he never purchased any
tobacco there, it would certainly do him no good to have it produced as
evidence, that the butt end of a cigarette from that place was found in
the gutter outside the window of the murdered woman's room."

After another prolonged inspection of the room, and not until he had
quite convinced himself that there was nothing more to be discovered in
it, he descended to the lower regions of the house, returned the key to
the landlord, and immediately left the building. Crossing the street, he
made his way to the house opposite. The caretaker received him, and
inquired the nature of his business. He gave his explanation, but a few
questions were sufficient to convince him that he must not expect to
receive any assistance from that quarter. The rooms, so he discovered,
from which it would have been possible to catch any glimpse of what was
going on in Teresina's apartment in the opposite house, were tenanted
only in the daytime.

"Nothing to be learned there," said Burrell to himself, when he had
thanked the man and had left the house. "Now the question to be decided
is, what shall I do next?"

He stood upon the pavement meditatively scratching his chin for a few
moments. Then he must have made up his mind, for he turned sharply round
and walked off in the direction of the Tottenham Court Road. Taking a
'bus there, he made his way on it to Oxford Street, thence, having
changed conveyances, he proceeded as far as Regent Street. It was a
bright, sunny morning, and the pavements of that fashionable
thoroughfare were crowded with pedestrians. As the burly,
farmerish-looking man strode along, few, if any, of the people he passed
would have believed him to be the great detective whose name had struck
a terror, that nothing else could have inspired, into the hearts of so
many hardened criminals. When he was a little more than half-way down
the street, he turned sharply to his left hand, passed into another and
shorter thoroughfare, then turned to his left again, and finally
entered another street on his right. He was now in the neighbourhood of
quiet-looking houses of the office description. There was nothing about
them to indicate that their occupants were the possessors of any great
amount of wealth, and yet one could not help feeling, as one looked at
them, that there was a substantial, money-making air about them. Having
reached a particular doorway, Burrell paused, consulted the names
engraved upon the brass plate on the wall outside, and then entered. He
found himself in a small hall, from which a narrow flight of
linoleum-covered stairs led to the floors above. These stairs he
ascended, to presently find himself standing before a door on which the
names of Messrs. Morris and Zevenboom were painted. Disregarding the
word "Private," which for some inexplicable reason was printed
underneath the name of the firm, he turned the handle and entered. A
small youth was seated at a table in the centre of the apartment, busily
engaged making entries in a large book propped up before him. He looked
up on seeing Burrell, and, in an off-hand fashion, inquired his
business.

"I want to see Mr. Zevenboom if he's at home," said the latter. "If he
is, just tell him, my lad, that I should like to speak to him, will
you?"

"That's all very well," said the boy with an assurance beyond his years,
"but how am I to do it if I don't know your name? Ain't a thought
reader, am I?"

"Tell him Mr. Burrell would like to speak to him," said the detective
without any appearance of displeasure at the lad's impertinence. "I
fancy he will know who I am, even if you don't!"

"Right you are, I'll be back in a moment."

So saying, the lad disappeared into an inner apartment with an air that
seemed to insinuate that if Mr. Zevenboom might be impressed by the
stranger, it was certainly more than he was. His feelings received
rather a shock, however, when his employer informed him in a stage
whisper that Mr. Burrell "_was the great detective_" and made him show
him in at once and not keep him waiting. Jacob was accordingly ushered
in, with becoming ceremony, and found himself received by a little man,
whose beady black eyes and sharp features proclaimed his nationality
more plainly than any words could have done.

"Ah, mein dear friend," said he, "I am glad to see you. It is long since
we have met, and you are looking as well as ever you did."

"I am all right, thank you," said Burrell genially. "Thank goodness, in
spite of hard work, there's never very much the matter with me."

Before he seated himself the other went to a cupboard at the back of his
desk and, having unlocked it, took from it a cigar box, one of a number
of others, which he placed upon the table at his guest's elbow.

"Try one of these," he said, "you will smoke nothing better in all
Europe. I pledge you the word of Israel Zevenboom to that."

"I can quite believe you," said Burrell, and then mindful of the
business that had brought him there, he added, "if there's one man in
all London who knows a good cigar I suppose you are that one."

The little man grinned in high appreciation of the compliment.

"Cigars or cigarettes, I tell you, it's all the same to me," he said,
spreading his hands apart. "There is no tobacco grown, or upon the
market, that I can not put a name to."

"And you are familiar with all the best makers, I suppose?"

The other again spread his hands apart as if such a question was not of
sufficient importance to require an answer.

"I know them all," he continued pompously. "And they all know me. Morris
and Zevenboom is a firm whose name is famous with them all."

A pause of upward of half a minute followed this remark, during which
Burrell lit his cigar.

"And now what can I do for you, my friend?" the other inquired. "I shall
be most happy to oblige you as far as lies in my power. You were very
good to me in de matter of----"

He paused for a moment. Then he thought better of it and came to a
sudden stop.

"Well, in the matter that we both remember," he added finally.

"I want a little information from you, that I believe it is in your
power to give," said Burrell, taking a note book from his pocket and
from it producing the scrap of cigarette he had taken from the gutter of
the house in Burford Street. He placed it on the desk before his
companion.

"I want you to tell me if you can who are the makers of these
cigarettes, and whether they can be obtained in England?"

The other took up his glasses and perched them on the end of his
delicate nose, after which he held the charred fragment of the cigarette
up to the light. This did not seem to satisfy him, so he took it to the
window and examined it more closely. He turned it over, smelt it,
extracted a shred of the tobacco, smelt that, and at last came back to
the table.

"That cigarette was made by my good friend Kosman Constantinopolous, of
Cairo, a most excellent firm, but as yet they have no representatives in
England. Some day they will have."

"Where is the nearest place at which these cigarettes can be obtained?"
asked Burrell.

"In Paris--if you like I will give you the address," the other replied,
"or better still I will get some for you should you desire to have some.
They are expensive but the tobacco is good."

"I won't trouble you to procure me any just now, thank you," Burrell
answered. "I only wanted to try and fix the maker's name. It comes into
some important business that I am just now at work upon. I suppose I
can rely upon your information being correct? It will make a big
difference to me."

"My good friend, you may be quite sure of that," the other answered with
pride. "I am Israel Zevenboom, the expert, and after fifty years'
experience, should not be likely to make a mistake in such a simple
matter as that."

Then, at Burrell's request, he thereupon wrote down the address of the
firm in Paris, after which the detective thanked him heartily for his
trouble and bade him good-bye.

"To-morrow," said Burrell to himself, "if all goes well, I will take a
run down to Mr. Henderson's country seat and make a few inquiries there.
After that it looks as if Paris is likely to be the scene of my next
operations. There are one or two little preliminaries, however, that
must be settled before I leave England."

He was as good as his word, and the mid-day train next day landed him
upon the platform at Detwich. He inquired how far it was to the Hall,
and on being informed of his direction, set off along the High Road at a
swinging pace. He was a man who never rode when he could walk, and, had
he not chosen another profession, it is possible he might have made a
name for himself in the athletic world as a pedestrian.

"It seems a sad thing," he said to himself, as he turned in through the
lodge gates and began to cross the park, "that a young gentleman owning
such a beautiful place as this should be clapped into limbo on a charge
of murder. But here I suppose is what the literary gentlemen call the
'Irony of Fate.' However, it's my business to get him out of the scrape
he's in if I can, and not to bother my head about anything else."

Having reached the house he sent his name in to Mrs. Henderson, and
asked for an interview. Her daughter Kitty was with her in the morning
room when the butler entered.

"Mr. Jacob Burrell?" she said in a puzzled way, looking at the card the
man had handed to her. "I don't know the name, do you, Kitty?"

"Why, yes, mother, of course I do," the girl replied. "How could you
forget? He is the famous detective whom the lawyers have engaged to take
up the case for poor Godfrey. Tell him that we will see him at once,
Williamson, and show him in here."

A few moments later Burrell made his appearance and bowed to the two
ladies. That he was not at all the sort of individual they had expected
to see was evident from the expressions upon their faces.

"Doubtless, ladies, you have heard my name and the business upon which I
am engaged," he said, by way of introducing himself.

They acknowledged that they had done so, and when they had invited him
to be seated, inquired what success he had so far met with. He shook his
head cautiously.

"In these sort of cases you must not expect to succeed all at once," he
said. Then observing the look upon their faces he added: "You see, Mrs.
Henderson, a big case, unless the evidence is very clear and
straightforward, is not unlike a Chinese puzzle, being a lot of little
pieces cut out of one big block. Well, all the little cubes are tipped
out upon the floor in confusion, and before you can begin to put them
together it is necessary to familiarize yourself with the rough outlines
of the parts and to make yourself acquainted with the sizes, shapes, and
numbers of the pieces you have to work with. That done you can begin
your work of putting them together."

"Mr. Burrell is quite right, mother," Kitty remarked. "We must be
patient and not expect too much at first. We ourselves know that
Godfrey is innocent, and Mr. Burrell will very soon demonstrate it to
the world, I am very sure." Then turning to the detective she continued:
"Since you have spared the time to come down here, it is only natural to
suppose that you desire to ask us questions. If so, please do not
hesitate to put them. My mother and I will--only too thankfully--do all
that lies in our power to assist you in your work."

"Well, miss," said Burrell, "I won't deny that there are certain
questions I should like to put to you. In the meantime, however, if you
will allow me, I'll just take a walk round the place, and if I have your
permission to enter your brother's rooms, it's just possible I may be
able to find something that will be of advantage to him there."

"Go where you please," said Mrs. Henderson. "Heaven knows at such a time
we should place no restrictions upon any one. If you can save my poor
boy--I shall be grateful to you forever."

"Be sure, madam, I will do my best. I can't say more."

Kitty rose from her chair.

"Perhaps it would be better for me to show you my brother's studio
first," she said. "Will you come with me?"

Burrell followed her out of the room and down the long corridor to the
room in question. Kitty left him there, and for upward of half-an-hour
he remained in the apartment, busily engaged upon what he called
"forming his own impressions." After that he passed through the French
windows out into the grounds beyond, had a few minutes' conversation
with some of the men, and, when he had exhausted that portion of the
business, returned to the house to find that luncheon had been provided
for him in the library. He thereupon sat down to it and made an
excellent meal. That finished, he was wondering what he should do next,
when Kitty entered the room.

"I hope you have been well looked after, Mr. Burrell," she said. "You
are quite sure there is nothing else you would like?"

"Nothing at all, thank you," he answered, "unless I might ask you for a
cigarette?"

"A cigarette," she replied, with a suggestion of astonishment, for he
did not look like the sort of man who would have cared for anything less
than a pipe or a strong cigar. "That is very unfortunate, for I am
afraid we have not one in the house. My brother Godfrey, you see, never
smokes them, and I remember his saying just before----" she paused for a
moment and a look of pain came into her face, "just before this trouble
occurred," she continued, "that the supply he had laid in for his
friends was exhausted and that he must order some more." Then she
appeared to recollect something, for her face brightened. "Ah!" she
cried, "now I come to think of it, we _do_ happen to have a box which
Mr. Fensden left here before he went away. If you'll excuse me, I'll get
it."

He thanked her and she left the room, whereupon he walked to the window
and stood looking out upon the lawn, drumming with the fingers of his
right hand upon the pane before him. What his thoughts were at that
moment will in all probability never be known, but when, a few minutes
later, Kitty returned with a box of cigarettes in her hand, he turned to
greet her with as much excitement in his face as he had ever been known
to show about anything. The box in question was flat and square, with
some Arabic writing in gold upon the lid and the inscription Kosman
Constantinopolous et Cie, Cairo.

Jacob Burrell may or may not have been a cigarette smoker (for my part
I have never seen him with so mild a weed between his lips). I only know
that on this particular occasion he stood with the cigarette in one hand
for some time without lighting it, and the box in the other.

"Did I understand you to say that Mr. Fensden gave these cigarettes to
your brother?" he inquired at last, after he had turned certain matters
over in his mind.

"Yes," she replied. "He used to say laughingly that the weakest of all
Godfrey's weak points was his dislike to Egyptian cigarettes, and that
if he would only try to cultivate the taste for that tobacco, he would
be converted from barbarism to comparative civilization. You have seen
Mr. Fensden, of course?"

"I saw him in Court," Burrell replied, apparently without much interest.
"And now, I think, with your permission, miss, I will return to the
station. I have seen all that is necessary for my purpose here, and am
anxious to get back to town as soon as possible. There are several
matters there that demand my attention." Kitty was silent for a moment.
Then she gained her courage and spoke out.

"Mr. Burrell," she said, laying her hand upon his arm, "I suspect you
can very well imagine what a terrible time of suspense this is for us.
As I said this morning, we all know that my brother is innocent of the
crime with which he is charged. But how can we prove it? All our hopes
are centred upon you. You have done such wonderful things in the past
that surely you can bring the real perpetrator of this hideous crime to
justice. Can you not give us even a grain of hope to comfort us? My poor
mother is fretting herself to a shadow about it."

"I scarcely know what I can say just yet," he replied. "I, of course,
have begun to form my own theories, but they are too unsubstantial as
yet for me to be able to pin any faith upon them--much less to allow you
to do so. This, however, I will tell you, and any one who knows me will
tell you that it is something for me to admit. What I say is that up to
the present moment, I have been more successful than I had dared to hope
I should be. Like yourselves, I have a conviction that your brother is
innocent, and you may believe me when I say that it won't be my fault if
we can't prove it. May I ask you to rest content with that? I can not
say more."

"I can not thank you sufficiently for your kindness," she answered.
"Your words give me fresh hope. May I tell Miss Devereux what you say?"

"Miss Devereux?" asked Burrell, who for the moment had forgotten the
young lady in question.

"It is to Miss Devereux that my brother is engaged," Kitty answered.
"You may imagine how sad she is. Yet she has been, and still is, so
brave about it."

"Not braver than you are, I'll be bound," said Burrell gallantly. "And
now I will wish you good-afternoon."

He did so, and refusing her offer of a carriage to take him, was soon
striding across the park on his way back to the railway station. As he
walked along he thought of what he had done that day, and of the strange
good fortune that had so far attended his efforts.

"It is only the merest guess," he said to himself, "and yet it's the
old, old story. It is when they think themselves most secure, and that
detection is impossible, that they are in the greatest danger. At that
point some minute circumstance is sufficient to give them away, and it's
all over. This looks as if it will prove another example of the one
rule."

It was nearly five o'clock when he reached London. Arriving there he
called a hansom and bade the man drive him with all speed to Mr. Codey's
office. As it happened he was only just in time to catch the lawyer, who
was on the point of leaving.

"Halloa, Burrell," cried the genial Mr. Codey on seeing him, "you seem
excited. What's the matter now?"

"I didn't know that I had anything to be excited about," Burrell replied
with a smile at the lawyer's attempt to draw him out. "I only thought I
would drop in upon you, sir, to let you know that I am leaving for the
Continent first thing to-morrow morning. I may be away a week, possibly
a fortnight. I'm not able to put a definite time upon it, for it will
all depend upon circumstances."

"Then I suppose, as usual, you are beginning to find yourself on the
right track," the lawyer remarked drily.

"And, just as usual, sir, I reply that that's as may be," said the
other. "I don't deny that I've got hold of a piece of information that
may eventually put me on the proper line--but I've got to sift it
first--before I can act upon it. That's why I'm going abroad."

"Don't be any longer than you can help about it, then," returned the
lawyer. "You know when the trial comes off?"

"As well as you do, sir! That's why I want to get away at once. There's
no time to be wasted--that's if we're to be properly posted."

"Well, then, good-bye, and may good luck go with you."

Next morning Burrell, acting on the plan he had made, left London for
Paris, with the portion of cigarette in his pocket.




CHAPTER XIV


The first night of his sojourn in Paris was spent at the residence of a
friend who was also a well-known Stamp Collector. They dined at a
Restaurant together, and spent the remainder of the evening at a Café
discussing matters connected with their joint hobby. Had one looked in
upon Jacob Burrell then, as he sat sipping a glass of brandy and water,
it would have been difficult to imagine that this man who was so
emphatic and precise about Water Marks, Bâtonné Papers, Misprints, and
Fudges, was in Paris for the sole reason of elucidating a terrible
crime, and in the hope of bringing the criminal to justice.

Next morning he was up early and, as soon as was compatible with calling
hours, was on his way to the office of which Zevenboom had given him the
address. Sending his name in to the head of the firm, he asked for an
interview. This was promptly granted him and he was ushered into the
proprietor's office, a charming little apartment fragrant with the odour
of the divine weed. Now Burrell's French is not particularly good, but
Monsieur Zacroft's English was certainly a good deal worse. However,
they managed after a fashion, and with the help of a clerk, to make each
other understand, and that was perhaps all that was wanted. Zacroft
inquired with much solicitude after the bodily welfare of his good
friend Zevenboom, and on being assured that the latter enjoyed excellent
health, so far as Burrell was aware, proceeded to ask in what way he
could be of service to the Englishman. The latter immediately commenced
to explain, speaking in a louder tone than usual and using many
gesticulations, as an Englishman so often does, in the hope of making
his meaning clearer to his auditor. Later on Burrell produced the
charred remnant of the cigarette. The Frenchman admitted that the
cigarette shown to him was of the same brand as that manufactured by
Messrs. Kosman & Constantinopolous of Cairo, of which wealthy firm, he
took care to point out, he was the Parisian representative. He was also
acquainted with Mr. Victor Fensden, and admitted that he had supplied
that gentleman with cigarettes of the brand mentioned for some years
past.

Burrell admitted to himself that so far this was very good. He hoped
that there would be still better news to follow.

"Perhaps you can tell me when he obtained his last consignment from
you?" he said, after a short pause.

The manager begged Burrell to excuse him while he went into his shop to
ask the question. When he returned he laid a piece of paper before the
other. The latter took it up and examined it carefully, though he was
not at all prepared to find that the information would be of much value
to him. The surprise he received, however, almost took his breath away.
It was the work of a moment to whip out his pocket-book and to open it.

He turned the leaves until he arrived at the entry he wanted.

"And am I to understand you to say that Mr. Fensden wrote to you from
England for them? Are you quite sure of it?"

"Quite sure," replied the other, and intimated in exceedingly poor
English that he was prepared to show his customer's letter in proof of
the genuineness of his assertion. He did so, and Burrell examined it
carefully. Ultimately he prevailed upon the other to permit him to keep
the letter.

"I wouldn't lose it for a thousand pounds," he said to himself. "Good
gracious, this is nothing less than a stupendous piece of luck. It's the
last thing in the world I should have thought of."

He thanked the little tobacco merchant for his courtesy, and bade him
farewell, promising to remember him most affectionately to Zevenboom
when next he should see him. After that he went off to make arrangements
about his journey from Paris to Naples.

It was at a late hour of the night when he reached that famous Italian
city. Tired out he betook himself to his hotel, slept the sleep of the
just, and rose in the morning with the pleasant feeling that the day
before him was likely to prove a busy and also an exciting one. After he
had breakfasted, which he made a point of doing in the solid English
fashion, he smoked a contemplative cigar, and interested himself after
his own fashion in the billings and cooings of a young newly married
couple, who were staying at the hotel awaiting the arrival of the
out-going Australian Mail Boat. Then, having discovered the interpreter
whom the hotel manager had found for him, he set off for the street in
which he had been told Teresina Cardi and her mother had dwelt.

"'See Naples and die' they say," he muttered to himself, as he made his
way out of one into another tortuous and unsavoury street. "It should
have been '_smell_ Naples and die.' A connoisseur could discover a
hundred fresh unsavouries in every hundred yards."

At last they found themselves in the street in question, and, after some
little hunting, discovered the house in which the murdered girl had
resided with her mother. The interpreter questioned the head of the
family who lived on the ground floor. With many flourishes and bows, the
latter, whose only work in life, it would appear, was to smoke
cigarettes upon the doorstep, informed him that the Signora Cardi was
dead and that the funeral had been a most imposing one.

"Ask him what has become of the daughter," said Burrell, who was anxious
to discover whether or not the man were aware of the murder.

"Gone," was the laconic reply. Eventually he condescended to add, "An
Englishman came to see her, and the signorina went away with him. I can
tell you no more."

He manufactured for himself another cigarette, with the air of a man who
has done everything he could to prove himself hospitable, and is not
quite certain whether he has succeeded in the attempt. At this juncture
Burrell rattled the money in his pocket.

"Ask him if he thinks he would know the man again if he were to see
him," he said. "Tell him also that I will pay him well for any
information he may give me."

A vehement debate ensued--which might have lasted from three to five
minutes. At the end the interpreter translated.

"He says, your Excellency, that he could pick the man out from a
hundred."

"He's been a jolly long time saying it," said Burrell, and as he spoke
he took from his pocket half-a-dozen photographs which he had brought
with him for that purpose. "However, he shall try!"

Among the number were likenesses of Fensden and Henderson. There were
also others of men who had nothing whatsoever to do with the case. The
proprietor of the ground floor rooms picked them up one by one and
examined them critically. When he reached Fensden's portrait he held it
up immediately.

"That is the man," he said to the interpreter. "I need look no farther.
I should know him anywhere."

Burrell replaced the photographs in his pocket.

"Ask him if he has any idea where the man he speaks of stayed when he
was in Naples," Burrell remarked to the man, but upon this subject it
appeared that the other could give no sort of information, though he
volunteered for a reward to find out. This help, however, Burrell
declined. After rewarding him, he retraced his steps to the hotel.

"It should not be difficult," he thought as he went along, "to discover
the Englishman's abode during the time he was in Naples. He is not the
sort of man to put up anywhere but at a good hotel."

Foreseeing for this reason that the number of the hotels at which the
man he was inquiring about would be likely to stay, were limited, he
resolved to institute investigations that afternoon. He was very soon
successful. At the second at which he called he discovered that Fensden
had resided there and that he had left again on the 3rd of February. The
manager knew nothing of any _liaison_ with a girl of the city, nor could
he say where his guest went after he left Naples. His servants were
equally ignorant, though one of them believed Signor Fensden's
destination to have been Rome. Thanking the manager for his courtesy,
Burrell left the hotel more than a little disappointed, to spend the
remainder of the afternoon securing affidavits as to dates and generally
verifying the discoveries he had made.

"Well, I suppose there's nothing for it but to try Rome," he said to
himself, when he had considered the matter in all its details.

Early next morning he accordingly shook the highly scented dust of
Naples from his feet, and in due course reached the Italian capital. He
had been there many times before, and in consequence he was a great
favourite at the hotel where he usually resided. The owner welcomed him
effusively, somewhat as he would have done a long-lost brother of whom
he stood in some little awe, and trusted that he had come to make a long
stay.

"I am afraid not," said Burrell. "I have got an important piece of
business on hand just now which must be completed as quickly as
possible. I am trying to hunt up the doings of an Englishman, who I have
reason to believe came here from Naples with a Neapolitan girl, in
February last. Possibly he may have stayed with you. Here is his
photograph. See if you can recognise him!"

He thereupon produced the photograph of Fensden, and laid it on the
table for the manager's inspection. The latter, however, shook his head.
He could not remember the face among his guests.

"In that case I must begin my rounds of the hotels again, I suppose,"
said Burrell.

After luncheon he did so. The result, however, was by no means
satisfactory. He made inquiries at every hotel of importance, and at
many that were not, but try as he would he could glean no tidings of the
pair whose doings he was so anxious to trace.

"It's evident I've gone wrong somewhere," he said to himself. "I don't
think I will waste any more time in this place, but go straight on to
Vienna and look about me there. We know that the box hailed from the
Austrian capital and that the wedding ring was manufactured in the same
country. For my own part I don't believe they came to Rome at all."

Once more he resumed his journey and at length had the satisfaction of
finding himself in Francis Joseph's famous city. He was very fond of
Vienna, partly because he had made two important captures there, and
possibly more so for the reason that one of the best deals in stamps he
had ever effected was brought to a head in that delightful city. On this
occasion he lost no time, but set to work immediately on his arrival. In
this town, however, the search was not destined to prove a difficult
one. He had not been more than twice unsuccessful when he tried the
Hotel National in the Käarntner Strasse. The manager himself admitted
that he had a bad memory for faces, but he was quite sure of one thing,
if they had stayed at his hotel, his head waiter would be sure to
recollect them. That functionary was immediately summoned to the
council, and the photograph was placed before him. He had no sooner
looked upon it than he recognised it as being the likeness of the
gentleman who had stayed there with an Italian girl. They had come to
Vienna to be married it was said.

"To be married?" said Burrell in astonishment. "What do you mean by
that? Weren't they married when they arrived?"

Before the waiter could answer, light had dawned upon the manager, who
thereupon chimed in.

"Ah, my friend, I remember now," he said. "That was the gentleman who
was married at the Church of Funfhaus in the Gurtel Strasse. Now I can
recall the pair perfectly."

"The Church of Funfhaus in the Gurtel Strasse, you said, I think," said
Burrell, making a note of the name in his pocket-book for future
reference. "Pray how long did the happy couple remain with you?"

"For upward of a fortnight," the manager replied, consulting a book.
"But they were not happy all the time!"

"What do you mean by that? Why were they not happy?"

"For a very simple reason," the manager replied. "I mean that toward the
end of their stay it was becoming plain to most of us that the gentleman
was a little neglectful of his bride. Yet she was a beautiful girl! Ah!
a beautiful girl!"

"It was the waning of the honeymoon," said Burrell cynically. "Poor
girl, it didn't last long." He paused for a while to pursue his own
thoughts, then he continued aloud, "Have you any idea where they went
after they left here?"

The manager reflected for a moment.

"To Munich, I believe. But of that I am not quite certain. We will ask
Adolphe."

The head waiter was once more consulted, and corroborated his superior.
The couple had left for Munich with the intention of proceeding later to
Paris. He was sure of this for the reason that he had heard the
gentleman talking to the lady on the subject on the morning of their
departure.

The next day was spent by Burrell in collecting further evidence. He
interviewed the worthy clergyman who had married them, obtained certain
necessary documents from him, discovered the jeweller who had sold them
the wedding ring, and when he had learned all he wanted to know, took
the train and started for Munich.

In Munich he discovered the hotel at which they had stayed and sundry
other particulars which might, or might not, prove useful later on.
Thence he continued his journey to Paris, where more discoveries awaited
him. At last, and none too soon, he boarded the steamer which was to
carry him to England. Even this short voyage was not devoid of interest,
and by the time he reached London once more, he felt that there was not
very much standing between him and the end. But what remained was in all
probability more important than the beginning. There was a blank to be
filled in, and filled in it must be, somehow or another, before the
trial commenced.

His first act on reaching home was to write out a true and complete
record of his doings since he had left London. This done he consulted
the memoranda he had received from the representative of Messrs. Kosman,
Constantinopolous & Co., in Paris, and then set off by train to the
little town of Staines. From Staines to the charming little village of
Laleham is a comparatively short and a most charming walk. It was almost
mid-day by the time he reached the village and began to look about him
for Laburnum Cottage. When he discovered it it proved to be a pretty
little thatched building standing in a garden which in summer would be
bright with hollyhocks, nasturtiums and other homely flowers. A card in
the window proclaimed the fact that apartments could be had within, but
at that particular season of the year this announcement would be little
likely to attract attention. Pushing open the gate, Burrell made his way
up the garden path to the neat little porch where he gave a smart
rat-tat with his stick upon the door. The sound had scarcely died away
before it was opened to him by a stout, matronly person, dressed in
black, and wearing a cap and a neat white apron.

"Mrs. Raikes?" asked Burrell, to make sure she was the person he desired
to see.

"That is my name, sir," said the woman. "Perhaps you will tell me what I
can do for you."

"I want you to give me some information," Burrell answered. "I have come
down from London on purpose to see you."

"From London, sir," she exclaimed, as if that were rather a remarkable
circumstance. "Will you be pleased to step inside?" So saying, she held
the door open for him to enter. He did so to find himself in a neat
little sitting room, unostentatiously yet comfortably furnished. Three
cases of stuffed birds decorated the walls, together with some pictures
on religious subjects, a bookcase, the latter scantily furnished, and
last, but not least, a Chippendale sofa, and two or three chairs that
would not have disgraced a ducal drawing-room.

"Kindly take a seat, sir," said Mrs. Raikes, dusting one of the
aforementioned chairs with her apron as she spoke. "If it's apartments
you want I am quite sure I can satisfy you. Of course it's a bad season
of the year, but at the end of the month we shall begin to fill up.
There's some splendid boating on the river, as perhaps you know, and at
night, when the houseboats are all lit up, well, it's quite lively."

Her desire to impress him with the gaieties of the place was almost
pathetic, and Burrell felt that he was acting meanly in permitting her
to go on, without acquainting her with the real object of his visit.

"I am sorry to say that I am not in search of lodgings," he said. "My
business is of an altogether different nature. In the first place, I
think I ought to tell you that I am a detective."

"A detective?" she cried in horror. "Lor', I _do_ hope, sir, there's
nothing wrong?"

"Not so far as you are concerned, you may be sure," he answered. "I have
come down here to make some inquiries regarding a gentleman who was
known to be staying in your house some time back. His name was Fensden."

The woman shook her head.

"I haven't had a gentleman in my house of that name," she answered. "In
fact, the only gentleman I have had since the beginning of the year was
a Mr. Onslow. The name of Fensden I don't remember at all."

Burrell consulted his pocket-book before he went further.

"And yet the information I received was most complete," he continued.
"Victor Fensden, Esq., %George Onslow, Laburnum Cottage,
Laleham-on-Thames. There couldn't be anything plainer than that, could
there?"

"It seems all right, sir," said the woman. "There is only one Laburnum
Cottage, and Mr. Onslow was certainly staying with us. He had his wife
with him, a sweet young thing, which was more than could be said of the
gentleman, I can assure you."

It was plain from this that she and Mr. Onslow had not been on the best
of terms. Burrell took from his pocket the photograph of Fensden, and
handed it to her. He was beginning to have an inkling of the truth.

"Is that the likeness of Fensden or of Mr. Onslow?" he inquired.

"Mr. Onslow, sir, to be sure," she replied, "and a very good one of him
it is too. I hope he's not a friend of yours, because I couldn't abear
him. The way he treated his poor foreign wife of his was enough to make
an honest woman's blood boil."

"So he had a foreign wife, had he?" said Burrell. "That's interesting.
Tell me all you can about him."

"There's not much to be told, sir, except about his bullying and nagging
that poor young thing. She was a foreigner, as I have just said, but as
nice a young lady as ever stepped in at my door. When they first came
she told me that Mr. Onslow was an artist, and that they wanted to be
quiet and away from London. They didn't mind putting up with the
roughness of things, she said, so long as they could be quiet. Well,
sir, they had this room and the bedroom above, and for the first few
days everything went as smooth and as nice as could be. Then I noticed
that she took to crying, and that he went away day after day and once
for two days. At last he disappeared altogether, leaving her without a
halfpenny in the world. Oh! I'd have liked to have seen the brute and
have given him a bit of my mind. It would have done him good, I'll
promise him that. I shall never forget that poor young thing in her
trouble. She waited and waited for him to come back, but at last when
there was no sign of him, she came to me in my kitchen there to know
what she should do. 'I know you have not had your money, Mrs. Raikes,'
she said in a kind of piteous foreign way, that went to my heart. 'I can
not stay here any longer, and so, if you'll trust me, I'll go away to
London and try to find my husband. Even if I do not, you shall not lose
by us.' I told her I didn't want the money, and that I was as sorry for
her as a woman could be. Poor dear, I could see that her heart was
nearly broken."

"And what happened then?"

"Nothing, sir, except that she went away, and she hadn't been gone a
week before the money that was owing to me was sent in a Post Office
Order. From that day to this I've heard nothing of either of them and
that's the truth. Whether she found her husband I can not say, but if
she'd take my advice she'd never try to."

"You are quite sure that you'd know the man again?"

"I am certain I should," the woman replied. "I hope, sir, in telling you
all this, I've been doing no harm?"

"You have been doing a great deal of good," Burrell replied. "Shortly
after she left you, poor Mrs. Onslow, as you call her, was most brutally
murdered, and I have been commissioned by the friends of the man who is
wrongfully accused of the crime to endeavour to discover the real
criminal."

"Murdered, sir? you surely don't mean that?"

"I do! A more abominable crime has not been committed this century."

The good woman was honestly overcome by the news and during the
remainder of the interview scarcely recovered her composure. Before he
left, Burrell cautioned her most strongly against saying anything about
the case to her neighbours, and this injunction she promised faithfully
to observe.

"By the way," said the detective, before he left, "do you remember
whether this man Onslow received any letters while he was staying with
you?"

"Only one, sir, so far as I know," the woman replied.

"You're quite sure of that?"

"Quite sure, sir, and why I happen to be so certain is that it caused a
bit of unpleasantness between them. I was brushing the stairs just out
there, when the letter arrived. It was Mrs. Onslow that took it in, and
when she saw the post-mark she asked him who it was that he knew at
Richmond. He snatched the letter from her and told her to mind her own
business. That afternoon he went out and never came back. It's my belief
it was some woman at Richmond as enticed him away."

"Have you any other reason for supposing that except the post-mark on
the envelope?"

"Well, sir," returned the woman, "to be candid with you, I have, though
perhaps it's a tale I shouldn't tell. I was so sorry for that poor young
thing that I couldn't get her trouble out of my head, and nothing would
serve but that I must watch him. I saw him sitting down at the head of
the table where you are now, sir, about half-an-hour after he had
spoken so cross to his wife, and she, poor dear, was upstairs crying,
and I noticed that he was writing a telegram. Presently he calls to me.
'Mrs. Raikes,' said he, 'want to send a telegram at once, who can take
it for me?' 'There's Mrs. Hawkins's little boy next door, sir,' says I,
'he's taken messages for gentlemen I've had in the house before now, and
always done it very well. I saw him playing in the field at the back of
the house only this minute.' 'Call him in to me, then,' says he, 'and he
shall have sixpence for his trouble.' I called the lad in, and Mr.
Onslow gave him the message, and then off he went with it, but not so
fast but that I was able to run across to the corner of the field at the
back there, and catch him on the road. 'Tommy,' I said, 'let me have a
look at that telegram.' He was a good little boy, and handed it over to
me without a word. It was addressed to 'Montgomery, 13 Bridgeworth Road,
Richmond.' There was no other name to it, and the only other word was
'yes.' It didn't seem to me that there was anything out of the common
about it, and so I thought no more of it, until you spoke of his having
letters just now."

"I think I'll make a note of the address in case it should be useful,"
said Burrell. "And now I'll be off, thanking you again, Mrs. Raikes, for
the information you have given me."

On leaving the cottage he walked back to Staines, caught a train to
London, and hastened to his house. Later on he made his way to Euston
Station. Another twenty hours elapsed before he was able to acquire the
information he wanted there--but he had the satisfaction of knowing,
when he had obtained it, that there remained now only one link to be
forged, and then the chain of evidence would be complete. That link was
forged at Richmond, and next day he handed in his report to the
astonished Codey.

"Good heavens, Burrell," said that astute gentleman, "this is as
marvellous as it is horrible. What do you think?"

"I think, sir, that we shall be able to prove that Mr. Henderson is
innocent."

       *       *       *       *       *

At last, after all the weary waiting, the great day arrived. The
Sessions had commenced at the Old Bailey. For two or three days prior to
this, Godfrey had been busy with his solicitor and his counsel. It was
not, however, until the afternoon before the commencement that he could
elicit from Codey any information as to Burrell's discoveries.
Immediately he was ushered into the room where Codey was awaiting him,
Godfrey saw from the expression upon the other's face, that there was
something to tell.

"You--have good news for me," he said, as they shook hands.

"The very best of news," Codey replied. "My dear sir, you may rest
assured that your innocence is completely established. The whole plot
has come to light, and, when we give the word, the authorities will be
able to lay their hands upon the man who committed the deed."

"But who is the man?" Godfrey hastened to ask, scarcely able to speak
for excitement. His pulse was beating like a sledge hammer inside his
head, until it seemed as if his brain must burst.

"Don't ask me that now," said Codey. "Put your trust in me until
to-morrow. Then you shall know everything. Believe me, I have my own
very good reasons for asking this favour of you. Rest assured of one
thing; at latest the day after to-morrow you will be at liberty to go
where and do what you please."

"But why can not it be settled at once? Why must it be the day after
to-morrow? It is cruel to keep me in suspense!"

"Don't you understand that we can not bring forward our witnesses until
the proper moment arrives?" said the lawyer. "The English law has its
idiosyncrasies, and even in a case of life and death, the formalities
must be observed. There is one thing, however, I can promise you; that
is, that when the truth comes out, it will be admitted that such a
sensation has not been caused in a Court of Justice before."

And with this assurance, meagre as it was, Godfrey had perforce to be
content.




CHAPTER XV


When Godfrey woke on the morning of his trial he lay for some moments
thinking over the strangeness of his position. He had been definitely
assured by Codey that nothing could prevent his being proved innocent,
yet how difficult it was to believe this when he was lying on a prison
bed in a prison cell with all the grim appurtenances of a convict's life
before him. The very books upon the shelf, the spy-hole in the door,
even his bed-clothes, reminded him that he was shut off from his fellow
men. At the usual signal he rose and dressed, and, having done so,
tidied his cell in the customary fashion. After this his breakfast was
served to him, and then he was permitted a short period of exercise in
the prison yard. He had not long returned to his cell before he was
informed that it was time for him to set off to the Court.

Never, if he lives to be a hundred, will Godfrey Henderson forget the
scene that met his eyes when he entered the Court--the judge and the
sheriffs upon the Bench, the jurymen seated in their box, the rows of
counsel, and the line upon line of eager-eyed spectators. When Godfrey
made his appearance in the dock a sudden silence fell upon the Court.
The Clerk of Arraigns rose and read over the charge preferred against
him, namely, of murdering one Teresina Cardi, and this done he was
called upon in the usual manner to plead. Advancing to the front of the
dock Godfrey looked straight before him and said, in a calm, strong
voice: "Not guilty, my lord." The jury were then sworn, and as soon as
this important business had been completed the counsel for the
prosecution rose and told the story of the crime. He described the
engagement of the dead woman by the prisoner, his employment of her for
some considerable time, and then his hasty departure for the Continent.
It would be shown that he had received a letter from her while in Egypt,
and that almost immediately afterward he had returned to Naples. In the
latter city he had invited her to dine with him, and had taken her to
the Opera afterward. He commented upon the fact that the prisoner had
voluntarily admitted to the police authorities that he had endeavoured
to induce her to return to England. At that time, however, it must be
borne in mind that he had not met the lady he now desired to make his
wife. Whether he had seen anything of the deceased, prior to their
meeting in the Strand, it was as yet impossible to say. The fact,
however, remained that his engagement to the lady in the country was
ultimately announced. Despite that fact, only ten days before the
wedding was to take place, he was known to have met the deceased woman
at midnight, and had taken her to her home in Burford Street, leading
out of the Tottenham Court Road. By the medical evidence he would
presently call, he would prove that less than half-an-hour afterward she
was brutally murdered. Before half-past twelve, that is to say, within
an hour of the cabman picking them up in the Strand, he would prove that
the prisoner returned to his Hotel in Piccadilly, very white and
agitated, and had called for brandy. Since his arrest, an exhaustive
search had been made at his residence, with the result that a
blood-stained knife, which had been identified as having been purchased
by the prisoner in Cairo, had been discovered hidden behind a bookcase
in his studio. As for the motive of the crime he would point out that
the deceased woman wore a wedding ring, that she was known to entertain
a great affection for the prisoner, and that the latter was about to be
married to another lady. What was more probable than that he should wish
to have the other woman out of the way before he could do so? That was
certainly only a conjecture, but it was one that carried a large amount
of probability with it. He would now proceed to call his witnesses.

The first witness called was the proprietor of the lodging-house, who
had identified the body. He was followed by the German cabinet-maker,
who had made the first and most important discovery. The police officer,
who had been called in when the door had been opened, followed next,
succeeded by the doctor who had made the post-mortem examination. The
question of identity and discovery having been settled, what the counsel
next proposed to do was to connect the prisoner with the crime. The
cabman who had picked them up in the Strand and had driven them to
Burford Street, was called, and the policeman who had seen them talking
together on the pavement there. Victor Fensden next deposed as to the
affection the deceased had entertained for the prisoner, and the efforts
he had made to induce the latter to give her up. He described Godfrey's
receipt of the letter from Teresina when on the Nile, and stated that
the prisoner had said nothing to him concerning his intention to visit
the woman in Naples. His next meeting with the prisoner was at the Mahl
Stick Club, where he had noticed a reluctance on his part to refer to
his association with the woman in the past. This was accentuated on the
following Saturday at the prisoner's residence in Midlandshire. He
recognised the knife produced, and recollected the circumstances under
which it had been purchased by the prisoner. This concluded Fensden's
evidence, and he accordingly sat down. Various other unimportant
witnesses followed, and then the case was adjourned for the day.

Wrapped in suspense, Godfrey was driven back to the jail to turn the
evidence over and over in his mind all night long. Whatever trust he
might place in Burrell and his discoveries, it was quite certain that
another twenty-four hours would elapse before his deliverance could be
expected. Once more he scarcely slept. The various events connected
with the trial thronged his brain with merciless reiteration. With
phonographic distinctness he could recall almost every word that was
said. He could see the judge upon the Bench making his notes with
pitiless exactness, the various counsel in the well of the Court
whispering together, the importance of the jury, and the
self-sufficiency of the Court servants. Yet he had Codey's assurance
that all was to be put right in the end, and with this knowledge he was
perforce compelled to be content.

At the same hour as on the previous day he was ordered to prepare
himself for his journey to the Court. The evidence already given against
him was so incriminating that the officials of the jail felt sure that
his condemnation was assured. They already looked upon him as a dead
man, and marvelled among themselves that he could carry himself with so
much assurance.

Once more the Court was crowded. Fashionable London felt that the end of
one of the most interesting cases of late years was drawing near, and it
was anxious not to lose an opportunity of witnessing the _dénouement_ of
the tragedy.

"The Court is ready," said the warder, and once more Godfrey ascended
the stairs that had constituted the link between life and death for so
many hundreds of miserable beings before him. He found the judge, stern
and implacable as before, upon the Bench, the various counsel in their
places, and everyone eagerly awaiting his appearance. He bowed to the
judge and took up his position at the rails. He determined that,
whatever else they might think, they should not imagine that he was
afraid. Then, with the customary ceremonial, the case was commenced.

The counsel for the prosecution having finished his case, Mr. Rolland,
having addressed the Court, prepared to call his witnesses. They were
few in number. The landlord of Godfrey's old studio in London deposed
that his rent had always been paid to the moment, and that he had heard
the deceased talk of the kindness she had received at the prisoner's
hands. "It was always in the language of a dependent," he said, "and in
no way that of a girl who believed her patron to be in love with her."

When the prosecution had declined to cross-examine this witness, the
counsel for the defence arranged his gown and assumed an even more
important air. It was evident that something was about to happen. A
moment later Victor Fensden was recalled.

"I am anxious, Mr. Fensden," said the counsel, "to ask you a question
regarding your return from the Continent. You have already told the jury
that you returned on the morning of the murder. Am I to understand that
that was really so?"

"I arrived on Thursday, the 15th," said Victor, and a close observer
would have noticed that he shifted uneasily on his feet as he gave the
answer.

"I should be glad also to have your repeated assurance that, from the
moment you saw the prisoner purchase that knife in Cairo, you did not
behold it again until it was handed you at the Magistrate's Court?"

"That also is quite true," said Victor, who by this time was more at his
ease.

"That is all I want to ask you. You may sit down," said the counsel.
"Call Simon Updale."

In response to the summons, a short, stout man, who was the possessor of
a fiery beard and the reddest hair ever seen on a human being, made his
appearance and took up his position in the box. He deposed that his
name was Simon Updale, and that he was an able seaman on a steamer
plying between Dover and Calais. On a certain day, a month before the
murder, he had been made the subject of a complaint to the captain by
the previous witness, Mr. Fensden. He was quite certain of the date and
of the passenger's identity, for the reason that one of his mates had
broken his arm before reaching Dover and he wanted to accompany him to
the hospital. On account of the complaint, however, he was not permitted
to go.

George Perran, steward on the same boat, was next called. He
corroborated what the previous witness had said, and recognised the
witness Fensden as being the gentleman who had made the complaint.

"That," said Mr. Rolland, "proves conclusively that the witness in
question has committed wilful and corrupt perjury, inasmuch as that he
was in England a month before he stated in his evidence."

Every eye in Court was riveted on Victor Fensden, whose face turned as
pale as the paper upon which I am writing.

"I shall now call James Tidmarsh," said Mr. Rolland, and in response to
the summons a small boy climbed into the witness-box.

His name, he stated, was James Tidmarsh, and he called himself an errand
boy, though as a rule he spent his time hanging about the vicinity of
Euston Station. He remembered distinctly on the night of Friday, the
16th, meeting a gentleman about eight o'clock outside the station who
carried a small wooden box in his hand. That gentleman stopped him and
asked him if he would care to earn half a sovereign. Upon his eagerly
answering in the affirmative, the stranger gave him the box in question
with the sum of fifteen shillings. "Take it to the station," he said,
"and hand it in at the parcel-office to be despatched to the address
written on the label. It won't cost more than a couple of shillings or
half-a-crown, and you can keep the change for yourself. I'll wait here
until you return to tell me it's all right."

The boy then declared that he started off, handed the box in at the
parcel-office and paid the money. In taking the money the clerk had
_sauced_ him and he had retaliated to the best of his ability. The
result was that the policeman on the platform gave him a good shaking
and turned him out of the building. He informed the gentleman that he
had sent the parcel off, and he had not seen him since that moment until
he came into Court and had heard the witness Fensden give his evidence.
He, the witness to whom he alluded, was, without a shadow of doubt, the
gentleman who had handed him the box to send to Detwich Hall.

The excitement in Court by this time may be better imagined than
described. The colour of Fensden's face was a dirty gray, and he seemed
to gasp for breath. The counsel for the prosecution seemed uneasy, and
even the judge leaned farther forward than usual, as if he were afraid
of losing a word of what was said.

The clerk in the parcel-office was next called, and stated that he
remembered the incident in question. The box was a foreign one, and as
he had placed it on the floor he had remarked, "Another made in
Germany."

The policeman who had turned the boy out of the station followed him. He
had seen the boy deposit a small box upon the counter and heard him say
something cheeky to the clerk. He thereupon bundled him out of the
station.

When this witness had finished his tale Mr. Rolland said: "Call Jacob
Burrell."

On hearing this a stir ran through the Court. The famous detective was
well known to all the officials within the building, and they, in the
light of this new discovery and the knowledge that this individual had
taken up the prisoner's case, began to regard the matter in a somewhat
different light. There was a slight flicker of a smile upon the austere
countenance of the judge when the counsel asked the detective his name.

"Jacob Burrell," was the reply.

"I understand," went on the counsel, "that you were instructed by my
friend, the solicitor for the defence, to make an investigation into
this case. In the course of that investigation did you visit Naples?"

"I did," the other replied.

"And what did you discover there?"

"I found that the witness Fensden, although he has denied the matter on
oath, was in Naples three weeks after the prisoner passed through on his
way to England."

The counsel here informed the jury that five affidavits to this effect
would be produced and read. Addressing the witness once more he said:

"Are you aware that the witness Fensden spent the greater part of his
time in Naples in the company of the deceased woman?"

"I found that to be the case. On February 3rd they left Naples together
for Vienna, stayed together at the Hotel National, in the Käarntner
Strasse, and were married on the 26th of that month at the Church at
Funfhaus, in the Gurtel Strasse. The wedding-ring, which was still upon
the left hand when it was sent to the prisoner, was purchased at the
shop of Messrs. Radler & Hass, in the Kohlmarkt."

"The head of that firm is now in Court," said Mr. Rolland, "and will
give his evidence. Call Herr Radler."

Herr Radler thereupon entered the box which Burrell had vacated, and
stated that he well remembered selling the ring in question to an
Englishman who was accompanied by a beautiful Italian lady. The
gentleman he recognised as the witness Fensden, and from the photograph,
that had been shown to him of the dead woman, he was able to swear that
it was for her the ring was purchased.

Victor Fensden, at this point, sprang to his feet as if to speak, but
his voice failed him, and he sat down again.

A sworn copy of the marriage certificate having been produced and read,
and handed up for the inspection of the jury, Jacob Burrell was
recalled.

"When you had traced the witness and the deceased to Vienna, what did
you do?"

"I returned to England, _viâ_ Paris and Calais," he answered. "On
reaching London I followed up certain clews I had received, and found
that the witness and the deceased lived for a short time together in the
country."

"At what place?"

"At the village of Laleham on the River Thames."

Here the counsel for the prosecution rose to protest.

"Your lordship," he said, "I must respectfully submit that the question
as to whether Mr. Fensden cohabited with the deceased is not relevant to
the case. We are trying the prisoner at the Bar and not Mr. Fensden."

His opponent took up the challenge.

"I respectfully submit that I am in the right," said Rolland. "In
eliciting this information I am leading up to the question of motive,
and I am sure my learned friend will admit that that is an all-important
point.

"I am afraid I must rule against you," said the judge, addressing the
Prosecuting counsel. "Anything that tends to throw a light upon the
proceedings of the deceased so short a time prior to the murder can
scarcely fail to be relevant."

Once more readjusting his gown, Mr. Rolland invited Burrell to proceed.

"How long did witness and the deceased occupy the house at Laleham?"

"For more than a fortnight. Then Fensden left her in a strange place
without a penny in the world." (Here a murmur of indignation ran through
the Court, which, by the judge's orders, was instantly suppressed.)

"That will do," said Mr. Rolland. "Call Elizabeth Raikes."

The owner of Laburnum Cottage next entered the box, and, though much
flurried by the novel position in which she found herself, gave evidence
to the effect that the deceased and Fensden had occupied apartments at
her house for the period mentioned by the previous witness. She was
quite sure, from things she had overheard, that they were not happy
together, and she knew that the man treated the woman cruelly. Sometimes
he was away for a couple of days, and one day he disappeared altogether
without paying for anything they had had while in the house, and leaving
his wife totally unprovided for. She had heard the present case talked
about, but had not associated the victim with the Mrs. Onslow who had
occupied rooms at her cottage.

"I have two more witnesses to call," said Mr. Rolland, when Mrs. Raikes
had stepped down. "Then, my lord, I shall have completed my case. Call
Mrs. Wilhelmina Montgomery."

A tall, handsome woman, fashionably attired, stepped into the
witness-box and took the oath. In response to the question put her by
the counsel for the defence, she stated that her name was Wilhelmina
Montgomery, and that she was the widow of George Montgomery, late of
Sheffield. "I live at No. 13, Bridgeworth Road, Richmond," she
continued. "I first met the witness, Victor Fensden, at Baden, while
travelling with some friends, in December last. We became very intimate,
and, when he returned to England early in March, he called upon me at
my house. Eventually he asked me to marry him, and after some
hesitation I consented to do so. I have three thousand a year invested
in Consols, and a considerable amount of ready money lying idle at the
bank. This may or may not have been his motive, but I have no knowledge
of that. Mr. Fensden was anxious for an immediate marriage, but to this
I would not consent. I knew that he was in the hands of the Jews, but I
would have paid off his indebtedness after marriage. He stayed at my
house on several occasions, as did others of my friends. One day I went
out to do some shopping, and on my return discovered him in my boudoir.
He held a piece of yellow soap in his hand and a large number of
door-keys were spread out on the table before him. I asked him what he
was doing, and he answered that he was endeavouring to find a key
similar to the one he had lost. My housekeeper had furnished him with
several, and he had at last found one that fitted the imprint in the
soap. On the night of the murder he informed me that it would be
necessary for him to attend an important meeting, and that it was just
possible he would not be back until late. As a matter of fact, it was
considerably after one o'clock, perhaps half-past one, when he
returned. On the Saturday following he left me to go down to
Midlandshire to pay a visit to an old friend, he said, who was about to
be married. Before he went he once more pressed me for an early
marriage, suggesting, knowing that I am fond of travelling, that we
should immediately set off for a long trip round the world."

The box which had contained the hands was then handed to her, and she
was asked if she recognised it.

"Yes," she answered immediately. "If you look underneath I think you
will find a large inkstain. (This proved to be the case.) I brought some
things in it from Vienna. How Mr. Fensden obtained possession of it,
however, I do not know."

The counsel for the prosecution having no questions to ask, the witness
was allowed to stand down.

"Call Joseph Hodder," said Mr. Rolland, and, to Godfrey's amazement, one
of his own under-gardeners entered the box. Having taken the oath, he
stated, in reply to the counsel's question, that, on the Sunday
following the murder, it was his duty to attend to the stoking of the
fires of the various conservatories at the Hall. He knew that his
master and the ladies had gone to Church, because he had passed them in
the park, and that the strange gentleman had remained at home, because,
when he had passed the drawing-room window on his way to his work, he
saw him sitting before the fire reading. Having attended to the fires in
the vineries and other garden-houses, he returned to the Hall itself to
look after the heat in the new winter garden that Mr. Henderson had
built. From this house in question it is quite possible to see into the
studio, and, to his surprise, he discovered the gentleman visitor was no
longer in the drawing-room, but was kneeling beside the big bookcase
near the fireplace in the studio. It looked as if he were feeling for
something behind it, but what that something was he had no idea. When he
was asked why he had not given information on this matter before, he
replied that he had not attached any importance to it until he had
talked it over with the head gardener on the day following the search by
the police. Then he had gone to Miss Henderson, and had told her. She
had written at once to his master's lawyer, and that was all he knew
about it.

"The evidence of this man," said Mr. Rolland, "completes my case."

The words had scarcely left his lips before Victor Fensden was seen to
spring to his feet. Once more he opened his mouth as if to speak, and
once more he failed to utter a word. Then, with a loud cry, he fell
forward in a swoon. Two of the policemen near at hand ran forward to
pick him up. Between them, they carried him out of the Court to an
adjoining room. In the Court itself at that moment, it would have been
possible to have heard a pin drop. Then the judge found his voice.

"Gentlemen," he said, addressing the jury, "after the astounding
evidence you have just heard, I am thankful to say that, in my opinion,
there is not the least shadow of a reason for continuing the case
against the prisoner at the bar. In this I feel sure you will concur
with me."

The foreman of the jury entirely agreed with his lordship, and at the
same time desired to express, on behalf of himself and his brother
jurymen, their great regret that a gentleman of Mr. Henderson's position
should, by another man's action, have been placed in such an unhappy
predicament.

"With that I quite agree," said the counsel for the prosecution.

This was the signal for general applause in Court, which, somehow, was
not checked by the judge as quickly as is customary in such cases.

When silence had been restored, the latter addressed Godfrey.

"Godfrey Henderson," he said, and his voice was very impressive, "by
reason of the false evidence that has been given against you, by a cruel
and vindictive man, you have been brought to the dock of this Court, and
charged with the perpetration of a most cruel and bloodthirsty crime. Of
that crime twelve of your countrymen have declared you to be innocent,
and to their testimony I emphatically add my own. While it is not in my
power to offer you the hope of receiving any return for the anxiety you
have suffered, I can say something that I know you will value much more;
that is, that you leave this Court a free man, and without the shadow of
a stain upon your character."

"I thank you, my lord," said Godfrey, quietly, and at that moment one of
the ushers of the Court entered and approached the judge.

"Gentlemen," said the latter, again addressing the Court, "I think it
only right to make it known to you that a Higher Power than that I
represent has intervened, and the wretched man, who has caused all this
misery and suffering, has been suddenly called to appear before a
greater Tribunal. May God have mercy upon his soul!"

Then the Court was cleared, and Godfrey found himself shaking hands with
Sir Vivian and the men who had worked so hard to prove his innocence.
When he had thanked them from the very bottom of his heart, Sir Vivian
took his arm.

"Come away now, come away," said the old gentleman. "There are other
people waiting to welcome you."

Seizing Godfrey by the arm, he hurried him out into the street to a cab
which was waiting there. Ten minutes later he was locked in his mother's
arms.

"O Godfrey," said Molly, as he embraced her in her turn, "I knew that
God would send you back to me!"

       *       *       *       *       *

A week later Godfrey and Molly were married by special license, and left
England the same day for the South of France. They are now back again at
the Hall, and as happy as two young people could well expect to be. The
clouds that shadowed their lives at one time are now completely
dispersed, but, if Godfrey lives to be a hundred, he will never forget
the agony he suffered in connection with what the newspapers called "The
Mystery of the Clasped Hands."

THE END




APPLETONS' TOWN AND COUNTRY LIBRARY.

PUBLISHED SEMIMONTHLY.


       *       *       *       *       *

    1. _The Steel Hammer_. By L. ULBACH.
    2. _Eve_. By S. BARING-GOULD.
    3. _For Fifteen Years_. By L. ULBACH.
    4. _A Counsel of Perfection_. By L. MALET.
    5. _The Deemster_. By H. CAINE.
    5-1/2. _The Bondman_. By H. CAINE.
    6. _A Virginia Inheritance_. By E. PENDLETON.
    7. _Ninette_. By the author of Véra.
    8. "_The Right Honourable._" By J. MCCARTHY and Mrs. CAMPBELL-PRAED.
    9. _The Silence of Dean Maitland_. By M. GRAY.
   10. _Mrs. Lorimer_. By L. MALET.
   11. _The Elect Lady_. By G. MACDONALD.
   12. _The Mystery of the "Ocean Star."_ By W. C. RUSSELL.
   13. _Aristocracy_.
   14. _A Recoiling Vengeance_. By F. BARRETT.
   15. _The Secret of Fontaine-la-Croix_. By M. FIELD.
   16. _The Master of Rathkelly_. By H. SMART.
   17. _Donovan_. By E. LYALL.
   18. _This Mortal Coil_. By G. ALLEN.
   19. _A Fair Emigrant_. By R. MULHOLLAND.
   20. _The Apostate_. By E. DAUDET.
   21. _Raleigh Westgate_. By H. K. JOHNSON.
   22. _Arius the Libyan_.
   23. _Constance_, and _Calbot's Rival_. By J. HAWTHORNE.
   24. _We Two_. By E. LYALL.
   25. _A Dreamer of Dreams_. By the author of Thoth.
   26. _The Ladies' Gallery_. By J. MCCARTHY and Mrs. CAMPBELL-PRAED.
   27. _The Reproach of Annesley_. By M. GRAY.
   28. _Near to Happiness_.
   29. _In the Wire Grass_. By L. PENDLETON.
   30. _Lace_. By P. LINDAU.
   30-1/2. _The Black Poodle_. By F. ANSTEY.
   31. _American Coin_. By the author of Aristocracy.
   32. _Won by Waiting_. By E. LYALL.
   33. _The Story of Helen Davenant_. By V. FANE.
   34. _The Light of Her Countenance_. By H. H. BOYESEN.
   35. _Mistress Beatrice Cope_. By M. E. LE CLERC.
   36. _The Knight-Errant_. By E. LYALL.
   37. _In the Golden Days_. By E. LYALL.
   38. _Giraldi_. By R. G. DERING.
   39. _A Hardy Norseman_. By E. LYALL.
   40. _The Romance of Jenny Harlowe_, and _Sketches of Maritime Life_.
          By W. C. RUSSELL.
   41. _Passion's Slave_. By R. ASHE-KING.
   42. _The Awakening of Mary Fenwick_. By B. WHITBY.
   43. _Countess Loreley_. By R. MENGER.
   44. _Blind Love_. By W. COLLINS.
   45. _The Dean's Daughter_. By S. F. F. VEITCH.
   46. _Countess Irene_. By J. FOGERTY.
   47. _Robert Browning's Principal Shorter Poems_.
   48. _Frozen Hearts_. By G. W. APPLETON.
   49. _Djambek the Georgian_. By A. G. VON SUTTNER.
   50. _The Craze of Christian Engelhart_. By H. F. DARNELL.
   51. _Lal_. By W. A. HAMMOND, M. D.
   52. _Aline_. By H. GRÉVILLE.
   53. _Joost Avelingh_. By M. MAARTENS.
   54. _Katy of Catoctin_. By G. A. TOWNSEND.
   55. _Throckmorton_. By M. E. SEAWELL.
   56. _Expatriation_. By the author of Aristocracy.
   57. _Geoffrey Hampstead_. By T. S. JARVIS.
   58. _Dmitri_. By F. W. BAIN, M. A.
   59. _Part of the Property_. By B. WHITBY.
   60. _Bismarck in Private Life_. By a Fellow-Student.
   61. _In Low Relief_. By M. ROBERTS.
   62. _The Canadians of Old_. By P. GASPÉ.
   63. _A Squire of Low Degree_. By L. A. LONG.
   64. _A Fluttered Dovecote_. By G. M. FENN.
   65. _The Nugents of Carriconna_. By T. HOPKINS.
   66. _A Sensitive Plant_. By E. and D. GERARD.
   67. _Doña Luz_. By J. Valera. Translated by Mrs. M. J. SERRANO.
   68. _Pepita Ximenez_. By J. Valera. Translated by Mrs. M. J. SERRANO.
   69. _The Primes and their Neighbors_. By R. M. JOHNSTON.
   70. _The Iron Game_. By H. F. KEENAN.
   71. _Stories of Old New Spain_. By T. A. JANVIER.
   72. _The Maid of Honor_. By Hon. L. WINGFIELD.
   73. _In the Heart of the Storm_. By M. GRAY.
   74. _Consequences_. By E. CASTLE.
   75. _The Three Miss Kings_. By A. CAMBRIDGE.
   76. _A Matter of Skill_. By B. WHITBY.
   77. _Maid Marian, and Other Stories_. By M. E. SEAWELL.
   78. _One Woman's Way_. By E. PENDLETON.
   79. _A Merciful Divorce_. By F. W. MAUDE.
   80. _Stephen Ellicott's Daughter_. By Mrs. J. H. NEEDELL.
   81. _One Reason Why_. By B. WHITBY.
   82. _The Tragedy of Ida Noble_. By W. C. RUSSELL.
   83. _The Johnstown Stage, and Other Stories_. By R. H. FLETCHER.
   84. _A Widower Indeed_. By R. BROUGHTON and E. BISLAND.
   85. _The Flight of a Shadow_. By G. MACDONALD.
   86. _Love or Money_. By K. LEE.
   87. _Not All in Vain_. By A. CAMBRIDGE.
   88. _It Happened Yesterday_. By F. MARSHALL.
   89. _My Guardian_. By A. CAMBRIDGE.
   90. _The Story of Philip Methuen_. By Mrs. J. H. NEEDELL.
   91. _Amethyst_. By C. R. COLERIDGE.
   92. _Don Braulio_. By J. VALERA. Translated by C. BELL.
   93. _The Chronicles of Mr. Bill Williams_. By R. M. JOHNSTON.
   94. _A Queen of Curds and Cream_. By D. GERARD.
   95. "_La Bella" and Others_. By E. CASTLE.
   96. "_December Roses_." By Mrs. CAMPBELL-PRAED.
   97. _Jean de Kerdren_. By J. SCHULTZ.
   98. _Etelka's Vow_. By D. GERARD.
   99. _Cross Currents_. By M. A. DICKENS.
  100. _His life's Magnet_. By T. ELMSLIE.
  101. _Passing the Love of Women_. By Mrs. J. H. NEEDELL.
  102. _In Old St. Stephen's_. By J. DRAKE.
  103. _The Berkeleys and their Neighbors_. By M. E. SEAWELL.
  104. _Mono Maclean, Medical Student_. By G. TRAVERS.
  105. _Mrs. Bligh_. By R. BROUGHTON.
  106. _A Stumble on the Threshold_. By J. PAYN.
  107. _Hanging Moss_. By P. LINDAU.
  108. _A Comedy of Elopement_. By C. REID.
  109. _In the Suntime of her Youth_. By B. WHITBY.
  110. _Stories in Black and White_. By T. HARDY and Others.
  110-1/2. _An Englishman in Paris_.
  111. _Commander Mendoza_. By J. VALERA.
  112. _Dr. Paull's Theory_. By Mrs. A. M. DIEHL.
  113. _Children of Destiny_. By M. E. SEAWELL.
  114. _A Little Minx_. By A. CAMBRIDGE.
  115. _Capt'n Davy's Honeymoon_. By H. CAINE.
  116. _The Voice of a Flower_. By E. GERARD.
  117. _Singularly Deluded_. By S. GRAND.
  118. _Suspected_. By L. STRATENUS.
  119. _Lucia, Hugh, and Another_. By Mrs. J. H. NEEDELL.
  120. _The Tutor's Secret_. By V. CHERBULIEZ.
  121. _From the Five Rivers_. By Mrs. F. A. STEEL.
  122. _An Innocent Impostor, and Other Stories_. By M. GRAY.
  123. _Ideala_. By S. GRAND.
  124. _A Comedy of Masks_. By E. DOWSON and A. MOORE.
  125. _Relics_. By F. MACNAB.
  126. _Dodo: A Detail of the Day_. By E. F. BENSON.
  127. _A Woman of Forty_. By E. STUART.
  128. _Diana Tempest_. By M. CHOLMONDELEY.
  129. _The Recipe for Diamonds_. By C. J. C. HYNE.
  130. _Christina Chard_. By Mrs. CAMPBELL-PRAED.
  131. _A Gray Eye or So_. By F. F. MOORE.
  132. _Earlscourt_. By A. ALLARDYCE.
  133. _A Marriage Ceremony_. By A. CAMBRIDGE.
  134. _A Ward in Chancery_. By Mrs. ALEXANDER.
  135. _Lot 13_. By D. GERARD.
  136. _Our Manifold Nature_. By S. GRAND.
  137. _A Costly Freak_. By M. GRAY.
  138. _A Beginner_. By R. BROUGHTON.
  139. _A Yellow Aster_. By Mrs. M. CAFFYN ("IOTA").
  140. _The Rubicon_. By E. F. BENSON.
  141. _The Trespasser_. By G. PARKER.
  142. _The Rich Miss Riddell_. By D. GERARD.
  143. _Mary Fenwick's Daughter_. By B. WHITBY.
  144. _Red Diamonds_. By J. MCCARTHY.
  145. _A Daughter of Music_. By G. COLMORE.
  146. _Outlaw and Lawmaker_. By Mrs. CAMPBELL-PRAED.
  147. _Dr. Janet of Harley Street_. By A. KENEALY.
  148. _George Mandeville's Husband_. By C. E. RAIMOND.
  149. _Vashti and Esther_.
  150. _Timar's Two Worlds_. By M. JOKAI.
  151. _A Victim of Good Luck_. By W. E. NORRIS.
  152. _The Trail of the Sword_. By G. PARKER.
  153. _A Mild Barbarian_. By E. FAWCETT.
  154. _The God in the Car_. By A. HOPE.
  155. _Children of Circumstance_. By Mrs. M. CAFFYN.
  156. _At the Gate of Samaria_. By W. J. LOCKE.
  157. _The Justification of Andrew Lebrun_. By F. BARRETT.
  158. _Dust and Laurels_. By M. L. PENDERED.
  159. _The Good Ship Mohock_. By W. C. RUSSELL.
  160. _Noémi_. By S. BARING-GOULD.
  161. _The Honour of Savelli_. By S. L. YEATS.
  162. _Kitty's Engagement_. By F. WARDEN.
  163. _The Mermaid_. By L. DOUGALL.
  164. _An Arranged Marriage_. By D. GERARD.
  165. _Eve's Ransom_. By G. GISSING.
  166. _The Marriage of Esther_. By G. BOOTHBY.
  167. _Fidelis_. By A. CAMBRIDGE.
  168. _Into the Highways and Hedges_. By F. F. MONTRÉSOR.
  169. _The Vengeance of James Vansittart_. By Mrs. J. H. NEEDELL.
  170. _A Study in Prejudices_. By G. PASTON.
  171. _The Mistress of Quest_. By A. SERGEANT.
  172. _In the Year of Jubilee_. By G. GISSING.
  173. _In Old New England_. By H. BUTTERWORTH.
  174. _Mrs. Musgrave--and Her Husband_. By R. MARSH.
  175. _Not Counting the Cost_. By TASMA.
  176. _Out of Due Season_. By A. SERGEANT.
  177. _Scylla or Charybdis?_ By R. BROUGHTON.
  178. _In Defiance of the King_. By C. C. HOTCHKISS.
  179. _A Bid for Fortune_. By G. BOOTHBY.
  180. _The King of Andaman_. By J. M. COBBAN.
  181. _Mrs. Tregaskiss_. By Mrs. CAMPBELL-PRAED.
  182. _The Desire of the Moth_. By C. VANE.
  183. _A Self-Denying Ordinance_. By M. HAMILTON.
  184. _Successors to the Title_. By Mrs. L. B. WALFORD.
  185. _The Lost Stradivarius_. By J. M. FALKNER.
  186. _The Wrong Man_. By D. GERARD.
  187. _In the Day of Adversity_. By J. BLOUNDELLE-BURTON.
  188. _Mistress Dorothy Marvin_. By J. C. SNAITH.
  189. _A Flash of Summer_. By Mrs. W. K. CLIFFORD.
  190. _The Dancer in Yellow_. By W. E. NORRIS.
  191. _The Chronicles of Martin Hewitt_. By A. MORRISON.
  192. _A Winning Hazard_. By Mrs. ALEXANDER.
  193. _The Picture of Las Cruces_. By C. REID.
  194. _The Madonna of a Day_. By L. DOUGALL.
  195. _The Riddle Ring_. By J. MCCARTHY.
  196. _A Humble Enterprise_. By A. CAMBRIDGE.
  197. _Dr. Nikola_. By G. BOOTHBY.
  198. _An Outcast of the Islands_. By J. CONRAD.
  199. _The King's Revenge_. By C. BRAY.
  200. _Denounced_. By J. BLOUNDELLE-BURTON.
  201. _A Court Intrigue_. By B. THOMPSON.
  202. _The Idol-Maker_. By A. SERGEANT.
  203. _The Intriguers_. By J. D. BARRY.
  204. _Master Ardick, Buccaneer_. By F. H. COSTELLO.
  205. _With Fortune Made_. By V. CHERBULIEZ.
  206. _Fellow Travellers_. By G. TRAVERS.
  207. _McLeod of the Camerons_. By M. HAMILTON.
  208. _The Career of Candida_. By G. PASTON.
  209. _Arrested_. By E. STUART.
  210. _Tatterley_. By T. GALLON.
  211. _A Pinchbeck Goddess_. By Mrs. J. M. FLEMING (A. M. Kipling).
  212. _Perfection City_. By Mrs. ORPEN.
  213. _A Spotless Reputation_. By D. GERARD.
  214. _A Galahad of the Creeks_. By S. L. YEATS.
  215. _The Beautiful White Devil_. By G. BOOTHBY.
  216. _The Sun of Saratoga_. By J. A. ALTSHELER.
  217. _Fierceheart, the Soldier_. By J. C. SNAITH.
  218. _Marietta's Marriage_. By W. E. NORRIS.
  219. _Dear Faustina_. By R. BROUGHTON.
  220. _Nùlma_. By Mrs. CAMPBELL-PRAED.
  221. _The Folly of Pen Harrington_. By J. STURGIS.
  222. _A Colonial Free-Lance_. By C. C. HOTCHKISS.
  223. _His Majesty's Greatest Subject_. By S. S. THORBURN.
  224. _Mifanwy: A Welsh Singer_. By A. RAINE.
  225. _A Soldier of Manhattan_. By J. A. ALTSHELER.
  226. _Fortune's Footballs_. By G. B. BURGIN.
  227. _The Clash of Arms_. By J. BLOUNDELLE-BURTON.
  228. _God's Foundling_. By A. J. DAWSON.
  229. _Miss Providence_. By D. GERARD.
  230. _The Freedom of Henry Meredyth_. By M. HAMILTON.
  231. _Sweethearts and Friends_. By M. GRAY.
  232. _Sunset_. By B. WHITBY.
  233. _A Fiery Ordeal_. By TASMA.
  234. _A Prince of Mischance_. By T. GALLON.
  235. _A Passionate Pilgrim_. By P. WHITE.
  236. _This Little World_. By D. C. MURRAY.
  237. _A Forgotten Sin_. By D. GERARD.
  238. _The Incidental Bishop_. By G. ALLEN.
  239. _The Lake of Wine_. By B. CAPES.
  240. _A Trooper of the Empress_. By C. ROSS.
  241. _Torn Sails_. By A. RAINE.
  242. _Materfamilias_. By A. CAMBRIDGE.
  243. _John of Strathbourne_. By R. D. CHETWODE.
  244. _The Millionaires_. By F. F. MOORE.
  245. _The Looms of Time_. By Mrs. H. FRASER.
  246. _The Queen's Cup_. By G. A. HENTY.
  247. _Dicky Monteith_. By T. GALLON.
  248. _The Lust of Hate_. By G. BOOTHBY.
  249. _The Gospel Writ in Steel_. By ARTHUR PATERSON.
  250. _The Widower_. By W. E. NORRIS.
  251. _The Scourge of God_. By J. BLOUNDELLE-BURTON.
  252. _Concerning Isabel Carnaby_. By ELLEN THORNEYCROFT FOWLER.
  253. _The Impediment_. By D. GERARD.
  254. _Belinda--and Some Others_. By ETHEL MAUDE.
  255. _The Key of the Holy House_. By ALBERT LEE.
  256. _A Writer of Books_. By G. PASTON.
  257. _The Knight of the Golden Chain_. By R. D. CHETWODE.
  258. _Ricroft of Withens_. By HALLIWELL SUTCLIFFE.
  259. _The Procession of Life_. By HORACE A. VACHELL.
  260. _By Berwen Banks_. By A. RAINE.
  261. _Pharos, the Egyptian_. By GUY BOOTHBY.
  262. _Paul Carah, Cornishman_. By CHARLES LEE.
  263. _Pursued by the Law_. By J. MACLAREN COBBAN.
  264. _Madame Izàn_. By Mrs. CAMPBELL-PRAED.
  265. _Fortune's my Foe_. By J. BLOUNDELLE-BURTON.
  266. _A Cosmopolitan Comedy_. By ANNA ROBESON BROWN.
  267. _The Kingdom of Hate_. By T. GALLON.
  268. _The Game and the Candle_. By RHODA BROUGHTON.
  269. _Dr. Nikola's Experiment_. By GUY BOOTHBY.
  270. _The Strange Story of Hester Wynne_. By G. COLMORE.
  271. _Lady Barbarity_. By J. C. SNAITH.
  272. _A Bitter Heritage_. By JOHN BLOUNDELLE-BURTON.
  273. _The Heiress of the Season_. By Sir WILLIAM MAGNAY, Bart.
  274. _A Voyage at Anchor_. By W. CLARK RUSSELL.
  275. _The Idol of the Blind_. By T. GALLON.
  276. _A Corner of the West_. By EDITH HENRIETTA FOWLER.
  277. _The Story of Ronald Kestrel_. By A. J. DAWSON.
  278. _The World's Mercy_. By M. GRAY.
  279. _The Gentleman Pensioner_. By ALBERT LEE.
  280. _A Maker of Nations_. By GUY BOOTHBY.
  281. _Mirry-Ann_. By NORMA LORIMER.
  282. _The Immortal Garland_. By ANNA ROBESON BROWN.
  283. _Garthowen_. By ALLEN RAINE.
  284. _The Lunatic at Large_. By J. STORER CLOUSTON.
  285. _The Seafarers_. By JOHN BLOUNDELLE-BURTON.
  286. _The Minister's Guest_. By ISABEL SMITH.
  287. _The Last Sentence_. By M. GRAY.
  288. _Brown of Lost River_. By MARY E. STICKNEY.
  289. _The Jay-Hawkers_. By ADELA E. ORPEN.
  290. _The Flower of the Flock_. By W. E. NORRIS.
  291. _A Private Chivalry_. By FRANCIS LYNDE.
  292. _King Stork of the Netherlands_. By ALBERT LEE.
  293. _Path and Goal_. By ADA CAMBRIDGE.
  294. _My Indian Queen_. By GUY BOOTHBY.
  295. _A Hero in Homespun_. By WM. E. BARTON.
  296. _A Royal Exchange_. By J. MACLAREN COBBAN.

       *       *       *       *       *

D. APPLETON AND COMPANY, NEW YORK.




       *       *       *       *       *

FOR NATURE LOVERS AND ANGLERS.

       *       *       *       *       *


Familiar Fish: Their Habits and Capture.

A Practical Book on Fresh-Water Game Fish. By EUGENE MCCARTHY. With an
Introduction by Dr. David Starr Jordan, President of Leland Stanford
Junior University, and numerous Illustrations. 12mo. Cloth, $1.50.

     This informing and practical book describes in a most interesting
     fashion the habits and environment of our familiar freshwater game
     fish, including anadromous fish like the salmon and sea trout. The
     life of a fish is traced in a manner very interesting to Nature
     lovers, while the simple and useful explanations of the methods of
     angling for different fish will be appreciated by fishermen old and
     young. As one of the most experienced of American fishermen, Mr.
     McCarthy is able to speak with authority regarding salmon, trout,
     ouananiche, bass, pike, and pickerel, and other fish which are the
     object of the angler's pursuit. His clear and practical counsel as
     to fly-casting, and rods and tackle and their use, and his advice
     as to outfits and the various details of camp life, render his book
     a most useful companion for all sportsmen and campers. Dr. David
     Starr Jordan has read the manuscript, and has lent the weight of
     his approval by writing an introduction. The book is profusely
     illustrated with pictures and serviceable diagrams.




       *       *       *       *       *

BOOKS FOR NATURE LOVERS.

       *       *       *       *       *


By F. SCHUYLER MATHEWS.

Familiar Flowers of Field and Garden.

     Illustrated by the Author. 12mo. Library Edition, cloth, $1.75;
     Pocket Edition, flexible morocco, $2.25.

Familiar Trees and their Leaves.

     Illustrated from Nature by the Author. 12mo. Cloth, $1.75.

Familiar Features of the Roadside.

     With Illustrations by the Author. 12mo. Cloth, $1.75.

Familiar Life in Field and Forest.

     With many Illustrations. 12mo. Cloth, $1.75.

       *       *       *       *       *

The Art of Taxidermy.

     By JOHN ROWLEY. Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth, $2.00.

Insect Life.

     By JOHN HENRY COMSTOCK. 12mo. Library Edition, cloth, $2.50;
     Teachers' and Students' Edition, $1.50.

The Insect World.

     By CLARENCE M. WEED. 12mo. Cloth, 60 cents.

Bird-Life.

     A Study of our Common Birds. By FRANK M. CHAPMAN, Assistant Curator
     of Mammalogy and Ornithology in the American Museum of Natural
     History. Illustrated by Ernest Seton Thompson. 12mo, cloth, $1.75.
     With 75 full-page Plates in Colors, 8vo, cloth, $5.00.

Handbook of Birds of Eastern North America.

     By FRANK M. CHAPMAN. With nearly 200 Illustrations. 12mo. Library
     Edition, cloth, $3.00; Pocket Edition, flexible morocco, $3.50.




       *       *       *       *       *

RECENT FICTION.

       *       *       *       *       *


The Brass Bottle.

A Romance. By F. ANSTEY, author of "Vice Versa," etc., With
Frontispiece. 12mo. Cloth, $1.50.

     "Not only is the plot of the book novel, like all of Anstey's work,
     but he has developed it with rare skill. The rollicking hilarity
     and absurdity of the conception are carried off with a gravity and
     seriousness that is the very essence of droll fun. The man who
     loves to laugh will find 'The Brass Bottle' a fountain of
     mirth."--_Brooklyn Eagle_.

The Eagle's Heart.

A Story of the West. By HAMLIN GARLAND, author of "A Spoil of Office,"
"A Member of the Third House," "Wayside Courtships," etc. 12mo. Cloth,
$1.50.

     "'The Eagle's Heart' is Mr. Garland's best work, considered as a
     story of sustained interest, strong characters, and exciting
     incidents."--_Cleveland Plain Dealer_.

      "Hamlin Garland may be seen at his best in 'The Eagle's Heart.'...
      He has graphically depicted the wild life on the Western plains;
      he has added a symmetrical and intensely interesting character
      study of the typical plainsman, and through the whole there runs a
      dainty love motive. These elements are combined with artistic
      skill."--_Chicago Tribune_.

      "Mr. Garland gives us as true a historical novel as any of the
      colonial period or the days of the War for Independence. He
      presents the dignity of the life and its service to the nation.
      'The Eagle's Heart' is a splendid achievement."--_New York Mail
      and Express_.

The Footsteps of a Throne.

A Romance. By MAX PEMBERTON. Uniform with "Kronstadt" and "The Phantom
Army." Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth, $1.50.

     "The reader's attention is held breathlessly until the last page
     has been turned."--_Boston Journal_.

      "The book trade has all at once had a great revival. Quite ten
      thousand copies of Mr. Max Pemberton's new story, 'Footsteps of a
      Throne,' have already been issued in this country alone. Of
      course, this is generally regarded as by far the best story, as
      well as one of the most dramatic, the author has yet
      written."--_From a special London cable to the New York Herald_.




       *       *       *       *       *

ADA CAMBRIDGE'S NOVELS.

Each, 12mo, cloth, $1.00; paper, 50 cents.

       *       *       *       *       *


Path and Goal.

This latest book shows the constant human interest which characterizes
the work of this sympathetic and charming writer. There is an
entertaining plot, and the backgrounds of the varying scenes of action
are sketched most vividly.

Materfamilias.

"The story is fragrant with the breath of farms, the aroma of the salt
sea, and the even sweeter essence that exhales from the homely virtues,
practiced amid simple surroundings, where family ties are strong, and
where love, loyal and true, reigns as queen."--_Philadelphia Item_.

A Humble Enterprise.

"A restful, sympathetic, domestic story, full of tender pathos,
excellent character drawing, and genuine, lovable human nature--a story
to be read, not once, but again and again."--_London Daily Mail_.

Fidelis.

"The original flavor of Ada Cambridge is not lost but enriched by being
ingrafted on a sturdy stock. Her pictures of Australia and of rural
England are as attractive as ever, her story better than ever."--_New
York Evening Post_.

My Guardian.

"A story which will, from first to last, enlist the sympathies of the
reader by its simplicity of style and fresh, genuine feeling.... The
author is _au fait_ at the delineation of character."--_Boston
Transcript_.

The Three Miss Kings.

"An exceedingly strong novel. It is an Australian story, teeming with a
certain calmness of emotional power that finds expression in a continual
outflow of living thought and feeling."--_Boston Times_.

Not All in Vain.

"A worthy companion to the best of the author's former efforts, and in
some respects superior to any of them."--_Detroit Free Press_.

A Marriage Ceremony.

"Highly original in conception, its action graceful though rapid, and
its characters sparkling with that life and sprightliness that have made
their author rank as a peer of delineators."--_Baltimore American_.

A Little Minx.

"A thoroughly charming novel, which is just the finest bit of work its
author has yet accomplished."--_Baltimore American_.




       *       *       *       *       *

BOOKS BY ALLEN RAINE.

Each, 12mo, cloth, $1.00; paper, 50 cents.

       *       *       *       *       *


Garthowen: A Welsh Idyl.

"Wales has long waited for her novelist, but he seems to have come at
last in the person of Mr. Allen Raine, who has at once proved himself a
worthy interpreter and exponent of the romantic spirit of his
country."--_London Daily Mail_.

By Berwen Banks.

"Mr. Raine enters into the lives and traditions of the people, and
herein lies the charm of his stories."--_Chicago Tribune_.

"Interesting from the beginning, and grows more so as it
proceeds."--_San Francisco Bulletin_.

"It has the same grace of style, strength of description, and dainty
sweetness of its predecessors."--_Boston Saturday Evening Gazette_.

Torn Sails.

"It is a little idyl of humble life and enduring love, laid bare before
us, very real and pure, which in its telling shows us some strong points
of Welsh character--the pride, the hasty temper, the quick dying out of
wrath.... We call this a well-written story, interesting alike through
its romance and its glimpses into another life than ours."--_Detroit
Free Press_.

"Allen Raine's work is in the right direction and worthy of all
honor."--_Boston Budget_.

Mifanwy: A Welsh Singer.

"Simple in all its situations, the story is worked up in that touching
and quaint strain which never grows wearisome no matter how often the
lights and shadows of love are introduced. It rings true, and does not
tax the imagination."--_Boston Herald_.

"One of the most charming tales that has come to us of late."--_Brooklyn
Eagle_.




       *       *       *       *       *

BOOKS BY J. A. ALTSHELER.

       *       *       *       *       *


In Circling Camps.

A Romance of the American Civil War. 12mo. Cloth, $1.50.

     "Mr. Altsheler has an enviable reputation. His method is that of
     Fenimore Cooper.... In 'In Circling Camps' he tells a good, strong,
     human story for its own sake, and not for the sake of showing off
     his talent as a literary story-teller. He gives us some great
     battle pieces, notably Shiloh and Gettysburg. His admiration of the
     nobler qualities of 'old friends turned foes' is so hearty and so
     sincerely dramatic that we love and pity the terrible valor of
     both."--_Richard Henry Stoddard, in the New York Mail and Express_.

      "The author seeks to interpret some of the situations of the civil
      war, and read to us out of the well-known records the story of
      personal bravery, the drama of personal history, and the old story
      of love which went on behind the grim scenes of
      war."--_Philadelphia Call_.

A Herald of the West.

An American Story of 1811-1815. 12mo. Cloth, $ 1.50.

     "A portion of our history that has not before been successfully
     embodied in fiction.... Extremely well written, condensed, vivid,
     picturesque, and there is continual action.... A rattling good
     story, and unrivaled in fiction for its presentation of the
     American feeling toward England during our second
     conflict."--_Boston Herald_.

A Soldier of Manhattan.

And his Adventures at Ticonderoga and Quebec. 12mo. Cloth, $1.00; paper,
50 cents.

     "The story is told in such a simple, direct way that it holds the
     reader's interest to the end, and gives a most accurate picture of
     the times."--_Boston Transcript_.

      "Graphic and intensely interesting.... The book may be warmly
      commended as a good specimen of the fiction that makes history
      real and living."--_San Francisco Chronicle_.

The Sun of Saratoga.

A Romance of Burgoyne's Surrender. 12mo. Cloth, $1.00; paper, 50 cents.

     "Taken altogether, 'The Sun of Saratoga' is the best historical
     novel of American origin that has been written for years, if not,
     indeed, in a fresh, simple, unpretending, unlabored, manly way,
     that we have ever read."--_New York Mail and Express_.

      "A sprightly and spirited romance gracefully written in a crisp,
      fresh style that is simply delightful to read."--_Philadelphia
      Press_.




       *       *       *       *       *

"AN EPIC OF THE WEST."

       *       *       *       *       *


The Girl at the Halfway House.

A Romance of the Plains. By E. HOUGH, author of "The Story of the
Cowboy." 12mo. Cloth, $1.50.

     The author of "The Girl at the Halfway House," Mr. E. Hough, gained
     general recognition by his remarkable book, "The Story of the
     Cowboy," published by D. Appleton and Company in this country, and
     also published in England.

      "The Girl at the Halfway House" has been called an American epic
      by critics who have read the manuscript. The author illustrates
      the strange life of the great westward movement which became so
      marked in this country after the civil war. A dramatic picture of
      a battlefield, which has been compared to scenes in "The Red Badge
      of Courage," opens the story. After this "Day of War," in which
      the hero and heroine first meet, there comes "The Day of the
      Buffalo." The reader follows the course of the hero and his
      friend, a picturesque old army veteran, to the frontier, then
      found on the Western plains. The author, than whom no one can
      speak with fuller knowledge, pictures the cowboy on his native
      range, the wild life of the buffalo hunters, the coming of the
      white-topped emigrant wagons, and the strange days of the early
      land booms. Into this new world comes the heroine, whose family
      finally settles near at hand, illustrating the curious phases of
      the formation of a prairie home. The third part of the story,
      called "The Day of the Cattle," sketches the wild days when the
      range cattle covered the plains and the cowboys owned the towns.
      The fourth part of the story is called "The Day of the Plow," and
      in this we find that the buffalo has passed from the adopted
      country of hero and heroine, and the era of towns and land booms
      has begun.

      Nothing has been written on the opening of the West to excel this
      romance in epic quality, and its historic interest, as well as its
      freshness, vividness, and absorbing interest, should appeal to
      every American reader.




       *       *       *       *       *

A NEW HISTORICAL ROMANCE.

       *       *       *       *       *


Betsy Ross.

_A Romance of the Flag_. By CHAUNCEY C. HOTCHKISS, author of "In
Defiance of the King," etc. 12mo. Cloth, $1.50.

     "Betsy Ross" is a historical romance based upon the story of the
     maker of the first official American flag. Mrs. Ross was a charming
     young widow of but little more than twenty-three when she was
     commissioned to make the flag from a design submitted to her by
     Washington. Her husband had been killed by an accident at the
     Philadelphia arsenal within a few months after his marriage.

      The romance which the author has woven around the origin of our
      flag will quicken the pulse of every reader by the wealth of
      striking characters and dramatic incidents, and the absorbing
      interest of the plot. History has furnished a motive which has
      been curiously neglected in fiction, and the picturesque figures
      of the time, sea-rangers and Quakers, redcoats and Continental
      soldiers, and even Washington himself, have to do with the
      development of a strange and thrilling story wherein Betsy Ross
      takes the leading part. The ancient tavern, the home of the
      Philadelphia merchant, the flag-maker's little shop, and the
      quaint and charming life of the time, are shown as the background
      of a series of swift incidents which hold the reader's attention.
      "Betsy Ross" is a book to be read, and the reader will recommend
      it.

      The Betsy Ross of history was a singularly bright and winsome
      woman, and intensely patriotic. Mr. Hotchkiss's story has been
      confined to the romantic days of her early womanhood. The house in
      which the flag was completed, and in and about which most of the
      action of the novel takes place, still stands on Arch Street,
      Philadelphia, and the attempt to preserve it as one of the shrines
      connected with American history is meeting with deserved success.
      Mrs. Ross (afterward Mrs. Claypoole) died at the great age of
      ninety-three, and her remains lie in Mount Moriah Cemetery.

       *       *       *       *       *

D. APPLETON AND COMPANY, NEW YORK.



***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE MYSTERY OF THE CLASPED HANDS***


******* This file should be named 42807-8.txt or 42807-8.zip *******


This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/4/2/8/0/42807



Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
will be renamed.

Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
permission and without paying copyright royalties.  Special rules,
set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark.  Project
Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission.  If you
do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
rules is very easy.  You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
research.  They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks.  Redistribution is
subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
redistribution.



*** START: FULL LICENSE ***

THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK

To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
  www.gutenberg.org/license.


Section 1.  General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works

1.A.  By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement.  If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.

1.B.  "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark.  It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement.  There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement.  See
paragraph 1.C below.  There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works.  See paragraph 1.E below.

1.C.  The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works.  Nearly all the individual works in the
collection are in the public domain in the United States.  If an
individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
are removed.  Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
the work.  You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.

1.D.  The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work.  Copyright laws in most countries are in
a constant state of change.  If you are outside the United States, check
the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
Gutenberg-tm work.  The Foundation makes no representations concerning
the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
States.

1.E.  Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:

1.E.1.  The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
copied or distributed:

This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
almost no restrictions whatsoever.  You may copy it, give it away or
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org

1.E.2.  If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
or charges.  If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
1.E.9.

1.E.3.  If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
terms imposed by the copyright holder.  Additional terms will be linked
to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.

1.E.4.  Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.

1.E.5.  Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg-tm License.

1.E.6.  You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
word processing or hypertext form.  However, if you provide access to or
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
form.  Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.

1.E.7.  Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.

1.E.8.  You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
that

- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
     the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
     you already use to calculate your applicable taxes.  The fee is
     owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
     has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
     Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.  Royalty payments
     must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
     prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
     returns.  Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
     sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
     address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
     the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."

- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
     you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
     does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
     License.  You must require such a user to return or
     destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
     and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
     Project Gutenberg-tm works.

- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
     money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
     electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
     of receipt of the work.

- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
     distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.

1.E.9.  If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark.  Contact the
Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.

1.F.

1.F.1.  Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
collection.  Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
your equipment.

1.F.2.  LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees.  YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3.  YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.

1.F.3.  LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from.  If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
your written explanation.  The person or entity that provided you with
the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
refund.  If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund.  If the second copy
is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
opportunities to fix the problem.

1.F.4.  Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.

1.F.5.  Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
the applicable state law.  The invalidity or unenforceability of any
provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.

1.F.6.  INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.


Section  2.  Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm

Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers.  It exists
because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
people in all walks of life.

Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
remain freely available for generations to come.  In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org


Section 3.  Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
Foundation

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service.  The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541.  Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.

The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
throughout numerous locations.  Its business office is located at 809
North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887.  Email
contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact

For additional contact information:
     Dr. Gregory B. Newby
     Chief Executive and Director
     [email protected]

Section 4.  Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation

Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment.  Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.

The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States.  Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements.  We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance.  To
SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate

While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.

International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States.  U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.

Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
methods and addresses.  Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
To donate, please visit:  www.gutenberg.org/donate


Section 5.  General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works.

Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
with anyone.  For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.

Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
unless a copyright notice is included.  Thus, we do not necessarily
keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.

Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:

     www.gutenberg.org

This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.